Tearmoon Empire Vol 8
Part 4: To the Moon-Led Morrow II |
Chapter 1: A Request from King Yuhal
“Huh? You want me to join you in the
Thanksharvest Dance?”
Mia frowned, caught off guard by the sudden
proposition. She’d been lounging in the guestroom of Perujin Agricultural
Country’s renowned cake-shaped castle, and figured that given her exploits last
night—successfully navigating King Yuhal’s dinner party and triumphing over the
wealthy merchant Shalloak—she’d solved all her problems for the time being and
earned some time off. This assumption was proven wrong when Princess Rania
showed up and immediately asked, “Princess Mia, would you be willing to join me
in the Thanksharvest Dance?”
The abruptness of the request and the
graveness of her expression puzzled Mia.
“But isn’t that something only Perujin
princesses are allowed to do?”
As far as Mia knew, the dance was supposed to
be a divine ritual performed by Perujin princesses to offer thanks to the
heavens on behalf of their people.
“Normally, yes, but this time we have
something called the Visitant’s Dance that’s performed to welcome eminent
guests to our country.”
“Hmm...”
Mia
crossed her arms in thought. I suppose as the
princess of a powerful neighboring empire, I’d classify as an eminent guest...
She did fit the bill.
“But it’s a participatory thing, right? I
don’t know the dance, so I’m not sure if I’ll be able to keep up.”
“You’ll be fine. The dance steps are the ones
you helped me with that one time.”
“Oh, now that you mention it, I do remember
that.”
Knowing that dancing was Mia’s (only) forte,
Rania had once asked her for help. Every year, Rania had to perform the
Thanksharvest Dance during the festival, but her sense of rhythm was spectacularly bad. The process of teaching her, Mia
remembered, had been particularly grueling.
“Besides, you managed to get here earlier than
planned, so you can take your time learning the steps.”
There was still a week until the day of the
performance, so she certainly wouldn’t lack practice time.
“Hm... Well, in that case, I suppose it’s
fine...”
Since dancing was her (again, only) forte, she
wasn’t particularly worried about learning the choreography. Tatiana had also
been prodding her to get more exercise.
I’ll probably end up eating a lot through this
festival, so I’ll need to work it off somehow. This dance practice might
actually be just the thing I need.
“Oh, by the way, Rania,” she said as another
thought came to her. “Can I bring Bel? I won’t ask for her to be included
during the real thing, but could she at least practice with us?”
Bel was no slouch either when it came to the
amount of face-stuffing she’d done since arriving in Perujin. Prescriptive
exercise was necessary lest she end up like Shalloak.
“I don’t see why not. Bel’s...a relative of
yours, I believe?”
“Yes, she’s my gr— Erm, sister.”
Rania, who took her verbal stumble for a
hesitant but honest reply, gave her the kind of sympathetic nod of
understanding usually reserved for leaving awkward familial implications
unsaid.
“Understood. Since she’s a member of the
imperial family, it might even be okay for her to participate in the actual
performance. It’s said that in the old days, the Visitant’s Dance used to be
performed by ten people or so. We’ll have her practice with us. Then, if she’s
okay with it...she can join us in the real thing.”
“Huh? Are you talking about me, Miss Mia?”
asked Bel, sitting up from her hammock with a start.
The hammock, fastened to two poles in the
center of the room, swayed with her motion.
“Eeek!”
She promptly tumbled off the wobbling fabric.
The previous night, after returning from
Shalloak’s treatment room, Mia had found Bel snoozing comfortably in the gently
rocking embrace of a hammock.
“No more, Miss Mia... I can’t eat anymore...”
The pleased grin on her face along with her
mumbled comment made clear what kind of dream she was having. The hem of her
pajamas was upturned, revealing her belly button.
“I swear, this girl...” Mia shook her head.
“She really needs to remember she’s technically the princess of a great empire.
This is not at all presentable...”
Mia, for the record, actually had pretty good
sleeping posture. Her personal sleep-vice was the fact that every so often,
she’d simply take leave of her bed at night. This happened most frequently
after exposure to ghost stories, after which she’d be discovered in Anne’s bed
in the morning.
She pulled Bel’s pajamas back over her tummy
and mumbled, “I’ll never figure out who this girl took after...” As she did,
she realized that said tummy was, in fact, quite round!
“I’ve never eaten...anything so tasty... Ehe
hee... I can keep eating this forever...”
As if on cue, Bel chimed in with her
sleep-mumbling. Mia suddenly felt like she was looking into a mirror. This girl
was, like herself, a victim of the same dreadfully mellifluous curse—the curse
of infinite appetite when faced with delicious food—that would be an endless
blight on their future health. Fortunately, Mia now knew how to fight against
its corrupting influence. The answer was exercise! And maintaining a routine
lifestyle!
“I need to get Bel to exercise more...”
Bel’s rotund belly had filled Mia with a new
sense of purpose, which was why Rania’s proposal was nothing short of a
godsend.
“Bel,” Mia said, “for every piece of delicious
food you eat, you need to work it off through exercise. You’re coming with me
to dance practice.”
Bel hopped to her feet and straightened her
back. “Understood, Grand— Miss Mia! If you want me to practice, then that’s
what I’ll do.”
She was a good girl.
“Oh, but we only have a few days left before
the performance, so I’ll have to cut down on my study time with Professor
Ludwig...”
A cheeky little rascal, but still a good girl.
“No, I don’t think you should do that. It’s
for your own good.”
Bel groaned. “Oooh, Miss Mia... You’re always
so mean...”
She promptly launched into a misty-eyed,
whimpering fit. Mia regarded the performative weeping and sighed.
The sheer audacity of this girl, I swear... She’s
a natural-born seductress. If it were father, she’d have him wrapped around her
finger. It’s scary to imagine what she’ll be like in the future... thought Mia, not quite
sure whether she was supposed to feel proud or concerned.
Chapter 2: Princess Mia...Throws Herself into Dancing!
After agreeing to Rania’s request, Mia
promptly began practicing the Thanksharvest Dance. Perujin dances involved
holding a paddle-like instrument—wooden clappers called “naruko”—in each hand
and rhythmically rattling them as part of the choreography. This was no problem
for Mia, who ultimately managed to emulate the routine she was shown almost
perfectly. There was an entrancing beauty to her fluid, graceful movements that
made it seem as if she’d been performing this dance all her life. While she was
undoubtedly a good dancer to begin with, the sheer mastery she displayed was
the result of hard work—a lot of it.
What convinced her to work so hard, you ask?
Well...
“We’ll have you do a simplified version of the
dance,” said Rania, “since the full version is pretty complicated.”
This act of thoughtfulness was turned down by
Mia, who replied, “My, you don’t need to worry about that. I’m fine doing the
full version.”
She didn’t want to
say that, but behind her was Bel, who’d looked up at her with wide, expectant
eyes and said, “Oh, I can’t wait to see Grand— Miss Mia dance!”
The earnest admiration of her granddaughter
stroked her ego just enough to push the words out of her mouth before her brain
had a chance to step in. She even managed to add, “Oho ho, then prepare to be
amazed, because my dancing will be breathtaking!”
Her brain was really
out for lunch.
Having openly declared that she was going to
wow her audience, failure was no longer an option. Lacking the nerve to wing it
on the stage, she succumbed to her inner chicken and decided to play it safe.
So, she practiced and practiced. Then, she practiced some more. All the while,
she was tormented by nightly nightmares of badly blundering on stage.
Nevertheless, she put in the time. After all, Mia believed in winning through
sheer numbers. Sheer number of hours, that is, be it studying or practicing. As
a result, she managed to develop the muscle memory necessary to master the choreography,
after which she proceeded to use this newfound competence to instruct Bel.
“Hold on, Bel. That part doesn’t go like that.
It’s more like a whoomph kind of thing, and then you
go whoosh with the spin, and then just shooo to a stop.”
Her incomprehensibly virtuosic instruction
was, however, interrupted by a visitor.
“Hello, Princess Mia. It’s been a while,
hasn’t it?”
“My, Chloe. I had no idea you were here too.”
The sight of her dear book buddy brought a smile to Mia’s lips. She’d missed
her. “I must say,” she added with a curious tilt of her head, “I didn’t expect
you to show up with Tatiana. It’s not every day I see the two of you together.”
Tatiana, who’d been taking care of Shalloak
the past few days, also appeared. She should have still been with him, in fact,
so what was she doing here?
“Mr. Cornrogue said he wanted to speak with
father, so...” said Chloe, worry evident in her expression as she looked at the
ground.
“It’ll be okay,” Mia said with a gentle smile
that quickly turned smug. “I already had a word with
him. Right, Tatiana?”
“Yes. Ever since speaking with Her Highness,
Master Shalloak has changed. He’s become a completely different person.”
Mia’s conversation with Shalloak did indeed
mark the day his intractable disposition vanished, leaving behind a far meeker
individual. Part of the reason was undoubtedly his commitment to resting his
ailing body, but she figured she deserved most of the credit.
Oho ho, and it’s all thanks to me. I broke that
man for his own good. He should be glad I was willing to play the villain for
him.
“Not to mention... Tatiana’s been whipping up
medicines for him to take.”
Mia grinned deviously.
Tatiana’s no slouch herself, is she? Not only is
she forcing Shalloak to shape up and get healthier, she’s even fixing his
personality. She did say she was giving him medicines to thin his blood, after
all. Smoothing a man by smoothing his blood... What a cunning method. The girl
knows what she’s doing!
People whose blood was thick and viscous were
touchy and hot-tempered. This was common sense to Mia, who was a firm believer
in the (pseudo)science of blood-based temperance.
“That’s why there’s no need to worry. He
probably won’t do anything unpleasant,” she said, figuring he probably wanted
to apologize.
Little did she know, the conversation would go
much, much further than a simple apology.
“Lord almighty, Shalloak. Look at you. This
must’ve been quite the ordeal,” said a shocked Marco as he walked into Shalloak
Cornrogue’s treatment room.
“Ah, Marco. You came. I’d have liked to greet
the head of Forkroad & Co. with a tad more dignity, but...”
Shalloak grimaced, the expression emphasizing
the slightly haggard lines on his face. At the same time, he seemed more at
peace, as if a great weight had been lifted from his shoulders.
“All the business deals I was planning to do
here have also gone up in smoke. I’ve truly hit rock-bottom.”
“You seem rather cheerful for a man at
rock-bottom.”
“Well, you know... A brush with death changes
a man. I’ve been doing a lot of thinking lately.” He met Marco’s gaze. “I’ve
wronged you, Marco. If you can find it in yourself to forgive me, then I beg
you to accept my apology.”
Marco
widened his eyes, astonished by both the apology and its sincerity. It truly is as if he’s a different man... So much so that it’s frankly
uncanny.
He smiled with resignation and shrugged. “It
was all just business. There’s no need for you to apologize. I am curious,
though... What brought about the sudden change of heart? Was it Her Highness?”
“I...suppose it was. You could say she opened
my eyes. To the kind of death that lay at the end of a life lived for nothing
but money, and the regret I’d feel if I did that.” Shalloak lowered his gaze.
“It...scared me, and I panicked. Can you imagine that? A grown man, panicking
because of what a young girl told him. But here we are. I still feel the panic,
and it compels me to do something...”
“I see...” Marco widened his eyes again,
astonished anew by the confession. The Shalloak he knew was famous for his
aggressive, profit-focused approach to business. That Shalloak was nowhere to
be seen, and it was all the doing of Mia Luna Tearmoon...
No wonder Chloe changed so much... No, it’s not
just her. I have as well...
Ever since he’d heard about Mia’s Bread-Cake
Declaration and how it—in his mind, at least—would lay the foundation for a
grand vision of ridding the whole continent of famine, the idea stayed with
him. Before he knew it, he’d started thinking of ways for him to contribute to
the project. Wasn’t this, he would wonder, his chance to truly make use of his
merchanting know-how?
“Hm? Is something the matter?”
“Oh, no, no. I was just thinking...” Marco’s
expression grew pensive. “In that case, Shalloak, I have a rather timely
proposal for you. Now, I haven’t heard anything from Her Highness, so this is
entirely speculation on my part, but I believe she’s going to...”
And so, Perujin’s Thanksharvest Festival began
in earnest, setting the stage for a myriad of intercrossing motives and
ambitions to come to fruition.
Chapter 3: Dance of Dawn
Perujin’s Thanksharvest Festival was a grand
event that began in the early evening and lasted through the night. In the
middle of the capital, Auro Ardea, was the town square, where an offering altar
had been built. It was here that the offering of first wheat was performed—a
lively ceremony that was ritual and feast all rolled into one. A portion of the
year’s earliest batch of harvested wheat, which had been put aside for this
very purpose, would be placed upon the altar. This signaled the official start
of the festival.
With the celebration under way, Mia was...
“Aaah, this tahkoe is such a marvel. I had no
idea a spicy tang went so well with mushrooms! I mean, mushrooms are plenty
delicious when eaten by themselves, but when you combine them with other
ingredients, they really bring out a lot of extra flavor. Such fascinating
stuff, mushrooms. There’s so much more to know about them.”
She took another bite and all but shuddered at
the sheer deliciousness. The thin bread wrapping housed a generous bundle of
crisp, leafy greens dabbed with a reddish sauce that provided the spicy kick.
Complementing them were Mia’s favorite food—mushrooms. The softness of the
bread contrasted perfectly with the vegetables’ crunchy texture, both of which
were further enhanced by the chewiness of the mushrooms. The trio of flavors
delighted her taste buds.
“Oh, it’s so good!
What a wonder that Perujin had such an excellent harvest. I won’t get to enjoy
any of this back home, so I’d better eat as much as I can right now. I need to
burn their flavor into my memory.”
Just as the thought of losing access to
Perujin food began to make her consider scheduling yearly trips here, Rania’s
lady attendant showed up.
“Princess Mia, it’s about time, if you
please...”
“Hm, then it’s our time to shine! Come on,
Bel!”
Mia rose boldly to her feet. An aura of
confidence radiated from her. Having consumed a great deal of delicious
mushroom dishes, she was raring to go.
The sheer amount of wonderful food I got to enjoy
here definitely calls for a proper expression of gratitude. I need to thank the
divine power that allowed such delicious mushrooms to be harvested, as well as
the people of Perujin for turning them into so many tasty dishes. This dance is
the perfect opportunity for me to show my appreciation!
She walked into a building, where she received
the clothing she would wear as a visitant. It was an odd set of garments. The
top was a single piece of fabric that wrapped around the body and was tightened
with a sash, while the bottom resembled trousers with very wide legs. She’d
never seen anything like it.
Anne promptly began to help her change into
them, only to find the process more confusing than she’d expected.
“Um... I think this part goes like this?
Wait... Huh?”
“Take your time, Anne. It’s unfamiliar
clothing, after all. It’s only natural we’d have trouble figuring it out.”
“Yes, but still, I’m sorry it’s taking so
long... I’ll go ask someone from Perujin for help.”
Anne darted off, soon returning with Rania’s
attendant in tow. With the additional help, she steadily deciphered the donning
process and straightened out Mia’s appearance. There was no tension to her
movements, nor any of the fretful anxiousness she’d displayed when pressured by
a desire to become more like Tatiana. The inferiority complex-laden Anne was
gone, replaced by her usual, diligent self using her usual, diligent approach
to learning a new skill. Eventually, she took a step back and nodded to
herself, clearly satisfied by her handiwork.
“All right, I’m done. You’re good to go,
milady.”
Seeing that Anne had gotten back into her
stride, Mia let out a deep breath and replied with a smile, “Thank you, Anne.
Off I go.”
As the festival ramped up toward its climax,
it reached a brief lull—like the calm before a storm—while the princesses
stepped backstage to prepare for the dance. The merry chatter of the feasters,
the volume amplified by the abundant alcohol present, waned in anticipation of
the coming peak. For a short moment, silence fell over the festival.
“Your Majesty...”
Yuhal, who was taking a quiet sip of his
drink, turned at the mention of his address.
“Hm? You are...a subject of Princess Mia, I
believe?”
“Yes. My name is Ludwig Hewitt. I work at
Tearmoon’s Golden Moon Ministry,” said Ludwig as he kneeled. “Forgive my
intrusion, but may I be so bold as to ask for a moment of your time?”
His deferential attitude was well warranted.
Normally, it would be an act of great impudence for a mere minister like him to
speak unprompted to the king.
“Be at ease. It is a night of festivities.
Tonight, king and subjects celebrate as one, for we give thanks to the Lord.
Before the power of the Lord, we are all but equal mortals. Speak your mind.”
“Thank you. Your Majesty is most generous,”
said Ludwig as he respectfully seated himself beside Yuhal. A few seconds
later, he continued in a quiet voice. “If it’s possible, Your Majesty, I’d like
to know your reason for permitting Her Highness to participate in the
Thanksharvest Dance.”
Yuhal didn’t immediately respond. He simply
swirled the drink in his cup, seeming neither surprised nor offended by the
question. Eventually, he replied in an equally soft voice.
“It was...simply a whim. No reason in
particular...”
“Was it to set up a staged debut?” pressed
Ludwig, all but overriding the king’s answer.
Yuhal raised an eyebrow at the sharpness of
the question before grinning.
“Oho. So you already figured it out. I see
that the princess’s chief vassals earn their keep.”
Seeing that his question was received
favorably, Ludwig continued to probe.
“I can see how introducing Her Highness to the
Perujin people in this manner would leave an impactful impression, but why do
so? This is something that will deeply affect the future of both our nations.
What moved you to this decision?”
Instead of answering, Yuhal posed a question
of his own. “Tell me, Ludwig. Are you aware of what happened at Saint-Noel
Academy’s entrance ceremony?”
He was, of course. Word of Mia’s Bread-Cake
Declaration had long reached Ludwig’s ears, and he’d already extrapolated the
vision it was ostensibly building toward.
“I am, and if I’m to imagine a framework
through which that declaration can come to life... It would be a massive
border-spanning anti-famine organization that operates throughout the
continent.”
“Correct. And such an organization would
require a base of operations. A location for its headquarters. Furthermore, its
operations would require agricultural expertise as well as food provisions that
can be quickly transported. It seems to me...that Perujin is in a perfect
position to nominate itself for this role.”
And that was the full scope of King Yuhal’s
vision for the future of his country. At the same time...
“Perujin has no intention to place our trust
in the empire itself. However, we are willing to trust Princess Mia as an
individual and shall spare no effort to help her achieve her grand vision.
Having her leave a lasting impression on my people...is my first step in laying
the groundwork for this endeavor.”
...It was also his answer to himself. As the
king of a people who’d built a castle in the shape of a cake, this was the
future he felt they deserved. That was why he extended an invitation for Mia to
participate in such a momentous event.
“Excuse us, but might we join in on this
conversation? The topic greatly interests us as well.”
Hearing a new voice, he turned to find the
approaching figures of two eminently accomplished merchants—Shalloak Cornrogue
and Marco Forkroad.
“Ah, Mr. Cornrogue. Has your health improved?”
“Enough to get me on my feet, and that’s good
enough. I can hardly afford to be sleeping during such a pivotal time.”
Clack! Cla-clack!
The shrill sound of wood hitting wood dampened
the noise of the crowd.
“Ah, it’s starting. We can save this talk for
later. For now, let us show our performers the respect they deserve.”
Thus, the princesses began their dance. The
performance would prove to be a historic event, referred to by later
generations as the dance that brought Perujin dawn.
Chapter 4: Perujin Dawn —Where the Cake-Shaped Castle Leads—
Clack! Cla-clack!
It sundered the silence.
Clack! Cla-clack!
It shook the night air.
Clack! Clack! Cla-clack!
The dance began.
The fire-lit altar glowed in the square, the
flickering light of its wind-blown flames dancing along with the princesses
they illuminated.
Arshia and Rania twirled gracefully around the
altar like wheat swaying in the autumn breeze, their faces blurred behind a
thin, fluttering veil. Their well-practiced motions flowed like silk, drawing
fond smiles from the gathered onlookers.
“Remember how Rania’s dancing last year was
still a little, you know...? Look how much she’s grown.”
“She really has. I’m so proud of her...”
Audience discourse unfolded with the tone of
proud parents watching their growing children perform. Year after year, they
gathered here and witnessed the same sight. So familiar were they with the
scene of the two sisters dancing round and round the altar that it had become a
symbol of the season, offering a sense of comfort and nostalgia through its
unchanging nature.
This year, however, things were different.
Clack-clack! Cla-clack! Cla-clack!
An unfamiliar rhythm greeted their ears. Then,
as if responding to the unusual cadence, a third set of wooden clappers sounded
in the darkness.
Clack! Cla-clack!
Everyone who looked toward the source of the
sound was left speechless by what they saw. Soon, all eyes were fixed on the
new figure and her striking attire. Dressed in the clothing of visitants, which
was made to resemble the garments worn by travelers from places far to the
east, she all but demanded attention. Her long, draping sleeves of sky-blue
fabric were adorned with gold thread sewed in the shape of wheat. Circling her
waist was a brilliant sash embroidered on which was a sequence of shapes
depicting the life of a fruit from sprout to harvest.
What shocked them the most,
though, was the person wearing the clothes. Her platinum blonde hair left no
doubt even from afar. It was the famed princess Mia Luna Tearmoon herself.
Behind her stood someone they assumed was her attendant. Or perhaps her
relative—the adorable young girl did have the same hair color as her, after
all. Slowly, the two of them walked in perfect sync with the rhythm toward the
altar.
“Oh, so it’s the guests from Tearmoon who’ll
be doing the Visitant’s Dance this time,” remarked someone in the crowd, the
offhand tone representing the attitude of the crowd at large. They all knew
what to expect—at least, they thought they did.
Right in front of their unsuspecting eyes, Mia
exploded into motion.
As soon as she reached the altar, she switched
up her rhythm. The steady andante that represented peace and stillness suddenly
transformed into a vigorous allegro with the furious intensity of a burst of
lightning. The new rhythm, fast and passionate, radiated unbridled delight.
The Visitant’s Dance was rooted in an ancient
tradition that existed before the founding of Perujin. Once upon a time, the
farmers who lived on this land had been long tormented by the difficulty of
tilling its arid soil. Then, a traveler told them of the existence of more
fertile lands and led them there. The dance was meant to express the delight,
excitement, and gratitude of the people at the time. Its swift tempo and
rhythmic intensity were too difficult for Bel, so the routine naturally
centered around Mia, whose exceptional dance skills allowed her to perform with
panache.
I sure hope we’ll have a great harvest next year
too. And have lots of delicious mushrooms grow. Oh, and wheat. We need wheat
for cake, after all. Fruits too, of course, and please let them be sweet and
tasty.
The alignment of her personal desire with the
choreographic theme lent an authenticity to her dance, enhancing its artistic
expressiveness. She threw her hands up, the motion sudden but graceful,
allowing her long, billowing sleeves to trail them in a slower, flowing arc.
Before the sleeves fell, she quickly spun in a half-circle to wrap them around
her body, only to come to an abrupt stop before reversing her rotation.
The fluid interplay of kinetic beauty and
statuesque stillness was synergistic, allowing the dynamism of the former to
accentuate the beauty of her silhouette in the latter. Then, she sundered the
calm once again, breaking into her next sequence. Gentle steps and twirls
swiftly built to fiery flourishes. She kicked her leg up high. As she brought
it back down with a thump, her other leg propelled her
into a small jump. Landing in a pirouette, she held a pose and sounded her
wooden clappers.
Cla-clack!
So passionate, so impeccable was her dance
that it left the spectators transfixed, staring with wonder-filled eyes as if
they were witnessing something divine. This was not the first time they’d seen
the Visitant’s Dance. Never, however, had they seen it done with such
sincerity, such zeal! Prior guests had all given half-hearted efforts, their
simplified routine more a show of participation than a performance. And that
had been fine. No one had ever expected otherwise.
But this princess did not choose to settle for
fine. She matched—in some cases surpassed—the emotion
and energy of her Perujin counterparts. Through Mia, the sacred dance was truly
brought to life, fully realizing its function as a holy prayer celebrating and
giving thanks for the Perujin people’s harvest.
Mushrooms, mushrooms, oh delicious, delicious
mushrooms. Cakes and fruits and lots of tahkoes. May I have the chance to enjoy
it all again with everyone next year!
On and on she danced with the holy(?) prayer
in her heart. As she did, Rania approached, dancing with equal vigor. They
parted, then neared again, repeating the cycle in concert like a pair of
skylarks going about their eponymous game. The sight of their shared smiles
evoked a communal memory of a day not long ago...when the two princesses walked
up the golden slope hand in hand. They’d walked as one. Now, they danced as
one. The Tearmoon princess had paid them the greatest possible degree of
homage. So, they returned her enthusiasm in kind.
The crowd went wild.
The spectacle of the dance, coupled with the joy of a good harvest and further
magnified by the stirring memory of that day at the slope, brought the
audience’s energy to unprecedented heights. The sheer excitement in the air was
entirely incomparable to any other year they could remember.
Eventually, the dance drew to a close. Amidst
the unending cheers of the crowd, King Yuhal stepped forward at the perfect
time for maximum dramatic effect.
“Now, let us give thanks for the year’s
harvest. Praise the Lord for this generous gift!” he declared in a booming
voice before the altar.
“Praise the Lord!” echoed the crowd.
“And praise Princess Mia as well, for the
earnestness and integrity she displayed in dealing with us. She deserves my
thanks, and I’d like to give it.”
He walked toward Mia, who stood there with a
“that was a job well done” look, shoulders still heaving from exertion.
“Please accept my deepest gratitude for your
magnificent dance, Princess Mia.”
“Oh, well, you’re very welcome. I’m glad you
feel that I did it justice.”
Mia glanced at Bel and nodded with
satisfaction at the sight of her admiring gaze.
“On that note,” continued Yuhal, “do you
remember the question you posed to me the other day? Would you mind if I
delivered my answer right now?”
After receiving Mia’s affirmation, he turned
toward his people.
“People of Perujin, I have a request for you:
please commit the events of today to memory. The sights, the sounds, the
excitement and emotions. Remember them. Keep them close to your heart,
alongside the wonder you felt that day at the golden slope.” His voice, though
quiet, made its way into every ear. “You have all seen for yourselves. Princess
Mia, who stands before you now, is not like the Tearmoon nobles we have come to
know. She deals with us in good faith, and she seeks from us not our
subordination, but our trust.”
Rumbles of awe and approval rolled through the
crowd. For them, whose ears had been calloused by language such as vassal state and lowly serfs, the
word trust was a healing salve. A mere word though it
was, the fact that it came from the lips of a Tearmoon princess gave it weight.
It meant something, because they knew that the one who spoke it had
consistently and unerringly demonstrated through her actions that she would
stand behind what she said. Trust was a two-way street, and she’d already
earned theirs.
“That is why...it is my wish to give it to
her. To build this bridge between her and our people. No matter what the nobles
of Tearmoon say, our trust shall lie with Princess Mia. She shall never betray
us. In return, we shall remain faithful to her as well. Those of you gathered
here today, I ask that you swear with me. Regardless of what trials and
tribulations we might face in the coming days, we shall never allow our trust
in Princess Mia to waver.”
He was answered by thunderous cheers. What had
started as a burst of fervor in the town square would soon ripple through the
capital like a seismic wave, eventually shaking all of Auro Ardea.
This day would go on to become a momentous
one, known as the Day of Perujin’s Dawn, serving as a historical crossroads
that decided the future fate of Perujin as a whole.
Perujin Agricultural Country, situated to the
south of Tearmoon, had long been viewed as a vassal state to the empire. With
no serious standing army and a complete lack of military fortifications in
their land, it had almost no way of repelling a foreign invasion alone, making
it dependent on the empire for defense.
That never changed.
What did change was
the perception of its people. Never would later generations refer to them as serfs. To them, Perujin was a country to be respected,
because it was home to the headquarters of the Mianet, a border-spanning
network of famine-fighting organizations that supported one another. Despite
its significance, however, its date of inception was a matter of much debate
among experts. Its formal commencement was technically three years after the
Day of Perujin’s Dawn when the summer regained its usual heat, but its conception
as a system of mutual aid had begun far earlier.
There were those who believed that it was this
year—specifically, this very Thanksharvest Festival—that gave birth to the
Mianet. And they had good reason to do so, for this occasion was in fact the
first time the core members of the Mianet had all gathered in the place that
would serve as its future headquarters.
First, there was the official leader of the
Mianet, Chloe Forkroad, whose skills subsequently proved indispensable in
getting the operation off the ground. Then, there was Marco Forkroad and
Shalloak Cornrogue, who gathered and liaised with numerous merchants to
establish a robust transportation network that could swiftly move foodstuffs to
and fro. Next, Rania Tafrif Perujin, whose steadfast efforts were instrumental
in spreading agricultural knowledge throughout the continent and developing
systems to ensure crops could be reliably produced and harvested. Finally, the
holy angel in white, Tatiana, who pushed for various types of medical reform
with a focus on the continent’s poorer nations, resulting in improved access to
healthcare.
These historical figures had all rallied under
the banner of Mia Luna Tearmoon’s Bread-Cake Declaration. Together, the Great
Sage of the Empire and her friends fought hard to eradicate plague and famine
from the land. And the people of Perujin were behind them every step of the
way. The cake-shaped castle, frequented by numerous bringers of peace and
prosperity, would eventually become their symbol and home.
All of those, however, are future stories yet
to be told.
—Excerpt from The Chronicles of
Saint Princess Mia, “The Day of Perujin’s Dawn”
Chapter 5: That Is the Way Bel Chooses to Live
Mia
sighed as her carriage rolled down the road. I
think I might have eaten a tad too much last night...
Two days after the Thanksharvest Festival, Mia
was on her way home. Had she gone to Saint-Noel, it would have been time for
the summer holidays by the time she arrived, so she decided to go straight back
to Lunatear.
Shalloak and the two Forkroads all claimed to
have unfinished business in Perujin, so they chose to extend their stay.
Tatiana lingered as well to accompany Shalloak.
I promised Chloe we’d return to Saint-Noel
together, so I guess this works out fine.
The group remaining in Perujin were in the
process of negotiations that would change the very course of history, but the
significance of this occasion was entirely lost on Mia, who had no idea such
epic developments were underway. Instead, she hopped on her carriage with
Ludwig, Anne, and Bel, and departed the agricultural country.
With Chloe, Tatiana, and Rania absent, a
quieter ambience settled over the vehicle.
“It’s...certainly roomier in here now, isn’t
it?” Mia mused.
There was a distinct melancholy in the air—the
kind thickest following a festive celebration.
“Yes. This trip with Miss Tatiana was a lot of
fun,” agreed Anne, her tone similarly somber.
“It sure was.”
Fruit-picking, the first sight of the capital,
the days spent in Auro Ardea’s cake-shaped castle, the dance practice... Events
floated through her mind one after another, coalescing into a shining tapestry
of summer memories.
“Indeed. It was a most fruitful time that we
spent here,” said Ludwig with a classic finger-to-glasses gesture. “If at all
possible, I would have liked to stay a little longer...”
Even he seemed to be having a sentimental
moment.
My, that’s not something I expected to hear from
him. I thought for sure he was the type to snort at things like reminiscing
about summer memories, thought Mia with a curious tilt of her head.
She turned to Bel.
“And you must be glad too, Bel. Your summer
will be in Lunatear this year, so you’ll have lots of time to spend with Rina.”
Last year, to Bel’s extreme dismay, she’d lost
her summer to supplementary exams. This year, she wasn’t heading back, so there
were no tests for her to take before the holidays. The cost, of course, was a
hellish gauntlet of makeup exams after the break. Judging by Bel’s
live-in-the-moment approach to life, though, Mia figured she wasn’t too
bothered by that fact. Bel’s response, however...
“Um... Miss Mia, I think I understand now,”
said the young girl, her expression surprisingly sober.
“Huh? Understand what?”
“I understand the danger of thanking people by
giving them money.”
“...Huh.”
Faced with Bel’s unflinchingly steady gaze,
Mia momentarily found herself at a loss for words. So she folded her arms and
gave Bel a prompting look to continue, effectively hiding her mental blank.
“That man, Mr. Shalloak... He fell for the
allure of money,” Bel said. “It led him astray, making him think it’s more
important than anything else. Making money became the entire purpose of his
work.”
“True. An imbalance of labor and reward robs
people of their motivation to work,” Ludwig supplemented. “Those who gain too
great a sum of wealth too easily end up craving ways to gain similar sums with
similar ease. Their goal becomes earning as much money as possible through as
little work as possible.”
Bel nodded. “That’s why we shouldn’t thoughtlessly
hand people lots of money—because it might become a source of misfortune for
them. I finally understand that now.” She refocused her gaze at Mia. “You’ve
always told me that what’s important isn’t money, and you backed that up with
your actions.”
Mia reflected on said actions.
Hmm, I suppose I did say money
isn’t everything, though that was just to drive Shalloak up the wall.
Her true motivation wasn’t something she was
comfortable sharing with her granddaughter.
“You were doing the ‘actions speak louder than
words’ thing, right? And trying to teach me how I should conduct myself as a
princess of the empire?” Bel asked.
Was I? I’m pretty sure I wasn’t...
She arched a perplexed eyebrow. Then,
realizing the revealing implication of the expression, quickly arched the other
as well before pressing both eyes shut. The motions, viewed in sequence, more
or less resembled a deliberate nod.
“So you were... I thought so.”
“If I may be so bold, Miss Bel, you should
know that Her Highness frequently behaves in such a manner,” said Ludwig. “At
times, she thinks in so many dimensions that our initial interpretations of her
behavior can be misleading. When in doubt, I recommend that you err on the side
of caution and verbally confirm the accuracy of your understanding...” He
propped up his glasses ever so intelligently. Being a pioneer Mia interpreter,
he spoke from a place of abundant personal experience.
“Yes, I’ll do that, Professor Ludwig,”
answered Bel, casually slipping in an honorific before his name. Then, she
turned back to Mia.
“Miss Mia, what you’re trying to tell me is
that as a princess of the empire, I should behave in a way that lives up to the
kindness and compassion I’ve received from others. Is that right?” She closed
her eyes and placed her palms over her chest. “That dance, the amendment to the
treaty between Tearmoon and Perujin, and the establishment of a new
relationship between the two... I now see that it was all a part of living up
to what the Perujin people have done for us. They treated us well, so we should
remember that and act in accordance...which is exactly what you did.”
The searing earnestness of her gaze forced
Mia’s eyes to reflexively wander. “Uh-huh. R-Right, that’s... Right. Of course.
Oho ho.”
“But, uh... I do think, Bel, that it comes
down to that in the end. A lot of people have helped you out, and to pay them
back, you should pursue the best life possible. Live up to their kindness by
living for yourself. Find your own happiness. That, in my opinion, is what the
people who helped you would want to see.”
Mia was no philosopher, but when she looked at
Bel, she couldn’t help but feel that the Annes, Ludwigs, Elises, and all the
other people of all those futures who offered Bel their love and care would
want nothing more than for her to be happy.
“But don’t sweat it too much. Even if you
don’t get around to repaying everyone, I’ll do it for you by making this empire
better. So relax a little and take it easy—it’ll be fine.”
She smiled gently at Bel, who responded with a
perky “Okay, Miss Mia!” and the kind of carefree, grinning nod so befitting a
girl her age.
Side Chapter: Untold Histories of Wheat —The Mythical Great
Famine—
History has no place for “what ifs.”
Nevertheless, human nature is to spread the wings of imagination and soar the
skies of possibility, exploring fantasies of what might have been. What if that
historical figure were still alive? What if that war were won by a different
nation? Amongst the myriad “what ifs” that permeate the collective
consciousness of scholars, there is a single one that keeps them all up at
night—what if cold-resistant wheat hadn’t been discovered at that crucial
juncture? Wouldn’t a famine of unprecedented scale have ravaged the whole
continent?
The “Mia No. 5”—currently one of the most
prominent strains grown throughout the continent—is based on seed stock first
discovered and developed by Arshia Tafrif Perujin and Cyril Rudolvon. The pair
made their breakthrough just as the continent was entering an enduring period
of cold summers. Having found a promising species of wheat in Outcount Gilden’s
domain up near the northern border of the Tearmoon Empire, they promptly began
to improve it through selective breeding. Two years later, a strain of wheat
named “Mia No. 2” appeared in the markets, but initial reception was less than
enthusiastic...
“Ugh, give me a break. Why is wheat so damn
expensive?”
The man groaned bitterly at the grains for
sale in the imperial capital’s marketplace. Wheat prices were up one and a half
times compared to previous years—not quite unaffordable, but certainly worth a
sour word or two.
“I heard yields this year are no better.
Everywhere’s seeing shortages, so if anything, the prices are gonna keep going
up,” quipped the merchant before him.
“For the love of... How’s a man supposed to
feed hi— Oh? Why’s this wheat so cheap?”
The man’s gaze stopped at a bag of wheat whose
price tag showed a number consistent with the prices he’d known before.
“Oh, those’re special. Supplied directly by
the government.”
“The government is supplying wheat...?”
The merchant smiled wryly at his bewilderment.
“There’s a lot of it in circulation, but the quality’s sort of...you know.”
“Not great, huh?” the man surmised from the
merchant’s hand gesture.
“At least not when made into bread. It’s too
sticky, and gets too stiff in the oven. Flavor’s not great either.”
The man rolled his eyes. “Wouldn’t you know
it...? I swear, sometimes, you wonder if the higher-ups are all a bunch of
clowns. What were they thinking pushing this kind of stuff into...” His
badmouthing paused when he saw the name imprinted on the bag of wheat. “Mia No.
2? What’s this supposed to mean?”
“The name of the wheat, apparently,” answered
the merchant. “Word is they made it in Her Highness’s academy city.”
“Huh. Her Highness, you say...”
A vision of the princess and her magnanimous
manner flitted through the man’s mind. He recalled the Birthday Festival this
past winter and the food provided by the nobles. Scenes of bloated bellies and
cheerful chanting resurfaced one after the other, as drunkenly sung birthday
wishes echoed in his ears.
“Wheat made by Her Highness, huh...” His gaze
softened.
“Hm? Something the matter?” asked the
merchant.
“Wha? Oh, no.”
He swallowed the somewhat unflattering comment
of the princess that had been climbing up his throat, for fear of being charged
for lèse-majesté. If he were to be honest though, there was something about the
wheat and its edible-but-not-very-tasty qualities that reminded him of the
princess herself. The way her generosity was marred...or perhaps accentuated by
the creeping sense that somewhere below the regal exterior was just a lovable
idiot... It was strangely endearing, just like this wheat. But he couldn’t
possibly say that out loud.
“I mean, I guess it’s better than nothing,
right? Beats starving to death, that’s for sure.” The man laughed and bought a
bag of Mia No. 2 wheat. He wasn’t the only one. Reactions from others were
similar. Driven by their fondness for their princess, they all chose to take
home a sack of the wheat that bore her mark.
So it was that Mia No. 2 slowly trickled into
the hands of buyers, sales fueled more by its name than quality. This situation
did not last long, for soon after the wheat’s introduction into the market, an
exceedingly devoted man took it upon himself to right what he saw as a terrible
wrong.
“I will not stand for this! A strain of wheat
bearing Her Highness’s name must not be seen as inferior! This egregious
situation requires an immediate solution!”
The man who rose to the challenge was the
empire’s most accomplished culinarian and head chef of the imperial court,
Musta Waggman. Holding firmly to the belief that the failure to produce good
food was the fault of not the ingredient but the method of preparation, he
sought to develop a new way of using the wheat. If it was a poor match for
bread, then it might be suited to something else... Deliberately discarding the
established paradigms of traditional cooking, he thought flexibly and tested
liberally. Eventually, he discovered the answer. The best way of preparing Mia
No. 2 wheat was not to bake it, but to boil it. What
came out of the pot was something white with a delightfully springy texture.
The head chef eagerly brought his creation to
Mia, who took one bite and said, with the utmost casualness, something that
blew his mind wide open.
“I think this would go very well with that
sweet bean paste I had the other time.”
It was true that they’d ordered some sweet
beans through Forkroad & Co. some time ago, but it had never crossed
Musta’s mind to mix the paste with this new creation. He promptly tried it and
realized that this was the true answer. His creation
was at last complete!
Thus, the head chef’s Wheat Project ft. Mia
bore fruit in the form of a dumpling they called the fullmoon
dango. It spread like wildfire from market to home to plate, and soon
became referred to as Mia dangos. White and springy
with a delectable stickiness, the dango’s inherent texture was perfectly
complemented by the sweet bean paste spread over it and proved popular with all
ages. This led to an apparent paradox that fueled dinner chatter for some time.
How was it, the people of Tearmoon wondered, that they were supposed to be in
the midst of a wheat shortage, but instead of starving, they were all enjoying
this delicious new food?
Not long after, Arshia and Cyril released
another strain, Mia No. 3, into the market, which was soon followed by Mia No.
4. These newer strains of the Mia series, through extensive selective breeding,
had gained qualities that made them more similar to traditional wheat. Despite
that, Mia No. 2 remained a household favorite, and its popularity dwindled
little with the introduction of its latter brethren.
“Seeking Outcount Gilden for his help... Sending
Cyril Rudolvon and Princess Arshia up north, where they discovered
cold-resistant wheat and initiated their selective breeding project...
Purchasing sweet beans through Forkroad & Co...”
One by one, Ludwig committed the events of
five years ago to paper, sighing deeply as he did. The people of Tearmoon,
content in their current prosperity, did not—and might never—know how close the
empire had come to calamity. The Great Famine, once a real and dire threat to
every soul and fortune, had become but a mythical specter of an unrealized
future. However ethereal it had become, however, it would not escape his eyes.
“If Her Highness hadn’t taken each and every
one of those steps...”
Had they not stocked up on provisions and
secured supply routes for food from distant sources, a great many would have
been lost to starvation. They could have chosen to save their own, but that
would have likely led to wars with neighboring nations over food, draining the
treasuries of all those involved and condemning their people to further
suffering.
“I still remember how much I struggled when
Her Highness said we should provide relief to nations in need even if it meant
digging into our own provisions. I wasn’t sure whether to support her or
admonish her...”
In the end, the appearance of the Mia No. 2
strain solved the looming food crisis, allowing them to evade the issue
entirely. When Ludwig first heard that selective breeding efforts had
successfully produced an agriculturally viable strain of cold-resistant wheat
and that the initial discovery had been made in Outcount Gilden’s domain, it’d
taken him a good few minutes to retrieve his jaw from the ground. The reactions
of his peers were identical. Mia hadn’t just solved the empire’s food problems;
she’d saved all nearby nations from a great famine.
“Had there been no Princess Mia, there would
surely have been a widespread famine...and the history of this continent would
have entered a chapter of deep tragedy.” He shuddered at the thought.
History has no place for “what ifs.”
Even so, Ludwig couldn’t help but wonder. What
if the era in which he lived hadn’t been graced by the genius that was Mia Luna
Tearmoon? What would have happened to the world?
History has no place for “what ifs.”
That was why the path of a newly devised
confection was the only one the Tearmoon Empire could take.
Even so, people couldn’t help but spread their
wings of imagination. What if this had happened that way? What might have been
then?
Conjecture, however, would ultimately remain
conjecture. The fact of the matter was that the wheat which banished the great
famine to the realm of myth would leave a long and enduring mark in history.
This illustrious strain of wheat was Mia No.
2. It bore the name of the Great Sage of the Empire. Consequently, it also bore
the name of the Tearmoon Empire’s very first—
Chapter 6: To Each Their Own Summers
Halfway through their journey back to the
imperial capital, Ludwig began speaking in a deliberate manner. “Your Highness,
allow me to offer my formal congratulations for your masterful resolution of
the Perujin dilemma.”
“Hm... Well, thank you, but for me, it really
wasn’t that big of a deal. I didn’t even need to do much, really,” Mia replied
with no small amount of pride.
Let us not forget that she really didn’t do much. Specifically, she picked some fruits, walked
up a slope in her bare feet, danced, and got to know her friend’s dad. That was
about it. For her, it was more or less a regular summer vacation. And a rather
enjoyable one at that! Anyway...
“On a related note,” said Ludwig, “regarding
the issue of becoming empress... Doing so would doubtlessly require the support
of foreign dignitaries. In that sense, establishing friendly relations with
Perujin should prove invaluable. Though small in scale, Perujin is a close
neighbor and ally. The support of their royal family may very well help tip the
scales in our favor.”
The social dynamics within Saint-Noel Academy
were effectively a miniature version of the political dynamics of nations
within the cultural sphere centered around the Holy Principality of Belluga.
The tightly knit—at times suffocatingly so—relationships between students were
highly representative of their nation-level counterparts. Nobles did not limit
their friend-making to compatriots. That kind of border-spanning networking was
also, conveniently, the very kind of friend circle Mia had hoped to establish
at the academy.
“Therefore, it would be wise to continue
establishing relations with influential persons of other nations until the day
of your coronation.”
“True. After all, having lots of personal
connections will be very important for becoming Tearmoon’s very first empress,”
agreed Mia, all the while hoping that said coronation would never actually come
to pass.
“With that said, I believe that your success
in gaining the support of Lady Rafina and Prince Sion was a crucial feat, for
it allowed us to make a statement to all the nobles during the Birthday
Festival. It was a stroke of brilliance, truly.”
“Oho ho, you’re giving me far too much credit.”
He was, but...
Huh. Now that I think about it... At this rate,
maybe I’m not actually that far from becoming empress. I mean, Miss Rafina’s
backing me. Sion too, and he’s the future king of Sunkland. With that kind of
political support, maybe...
The realization that most of the heavy lifting
might already be done made the whole empress thing feel considerably more
interesting.
Hmm... That reminds me. Lately, I haven’t been
reading the Chronicles. I should go take another look once I get back.
Thus, Mia’s group returned to the capital.
Meanwhile, at Saint-Noel Academy...
Rafina Orca Belluga, book in hand, was
patiently awaiting a guest in her private room. She managed to get some good
reading done before there was a knock on her door. A young man entered. He
brimmed with the rugged energy of an outdoorsman. His long black hair was tied
back, and his strong, lean yet firm frame was almost mesmerizing to behold.
Rafina smiled politely at Lin Malong.
“Hello, Malong. It’s been a while since we’ve
seen each other.”
“It sure has, Miss Rafina.” He held up his
hand, greeting her in his usual nonchalant fashion.
“I’m sorry to ask you to come back after
graduating, but I’d really appreciate it if you could keep looking after the
horses.”
“It’s all good. I was starting to miss them
myself, to be honest. Was hoping to check on them at some point. Besides, it’s
not like the Equestrian Kingdom always stays in one place. Popping by whenever
the camp happens to be close is no problem.”
Prompted by Rafina, he took a seat across from
her. On his side of the table was a cup of skyred tea, an Equestrian favorite.
Without the slightest hesitation, he downed the lightly steaming drink in a
single gulp, then looked at her.
“...Well? Let’s hear it then. What’d you
actually call me here for?”
“Gosh, what’s that supposed to mean? Can’t a
girl just invite a good friend over for some tea?”
“Most girls can, but not this
girl. I’ve known you for too long to believe you’ve got the spare time to be
drinking tea with someone like me.”
“Is that so, Mr. Lin Malong, next in line to
be chief of the Forest Lins, the most powerful clan of the Equestrian Kingdom?
It seems to me that there is political value in simply sitting down with you.”
Rafina let a brief silence hang before
continuing.
“But, I suppose time is indeed precious, and I
hear you’re quite busy, so I’ll get to the point.” She gazed calmly into his
eyes. “Are you aware of the attempt on Princess Mia’s life this past winter?”
“Someone ordered a hit on the little miss?
That’s news to me,” he said, brows rising a little in surprise. “Last I saw
her, she seemed fit as a fiddle.”
“By the Lord’s mercy, she managed to escape
unharmed...but the assailant was a man who rode a horse that could run faster
than Kuolan, who’s a Skyred Hare. He was also an expert swordsman, and on top
of that, commanded two wolves.”
“A horse on par with Kuolan, and a rider who
trains wolves, huh...” He crossed his arms. The trademark aloofness in his
expression had vanished, replaced by a stern frown.
“Yes, and I was wondering if you might have
any idea as to the man’s identity,” said Rafina. She took a sip of her tea, all
the while keeping her gaze on his face. “Because I recall hearing something
long ago about a lost clan in the Equestrian Kingdom...”
Malong nodded slowly.
“This past winter, huh...? Might have
something to do with the bandits stirring up trouble near the outskirts of
Sunkland, then...”
Chapter 7: Sion in Crisis and Mia in Thought
After returning to the capital, Mia
immediately flipped open the copy of the Chronicles she’d borrowed from Bel. To
be clear, she was just intending to give it a quick skim. Nothing serious.
Having been lectured by Ludwig on the importance of garnering support from the
nobility of nearby nations, she figured she had it made. After all, she was
already on pretty good terms with Rafina and Sion. As long as they—two of the
most influential figures in the continent—called for her support, backs would
surely bend toward her like reeds in the wind. The road to empress seemed, in
that moment, like a short walk in the park.
Alas, confidence spawned carelessness. As she
picked up the book, she was already imagining passages about a future where she
survived the poisoning to become empress. At the same time, a part of her was
also expecting nothing to change. She’d been burned before. It was better to
keep her expectations in check. It was probably still the same old chapters
describing the same old death. The thought of revisiting that vivid depiction
of her own end cut her desire to read in half, but she nonetheless forced
herself to open the book. Then, she forced herself to open her eyes. What she
saw on its pages...
“H-Huh?! What in the moons is this supposed to be?!”
Her mind reeled from the words, delivered like
a hammer to her brain, for it read...
“Sion Sol Sunkland perished in his youth.”
“What? B-But... How? Wasn’t Sion supposed to
become King of Sunkland? And get a cheesy nickname and stuff? What was it? The
Libra King or something?”
She hurriedly read through the changed
contents, only to find that Sion apparently lost his life in a skirmish with a
gang of bandits.
“Huh?! What was that
damn kid thinking? Why in the moons would he go out there himself? Just let the
soldiers handle it!” she groused before seeing something else alarming.
“Wait... What? There’s only thirty days left until this happens?!”
After her initial frustration passed, she
reconsidered her stance, realizing that this was in fact the very kind of thing
Sion was inclined to do. Considering how he seemed to see himself as some sort
of embodiment of justice, news of a gang of bandits causing problems could very
well lure him out from safety. Worse yet, she had heard that the kind of
“justice is best served personally” vibe was pervasive throughout Sunkland,
which only increased the risk of this happening. The idea that royalty was an
example for the masses and should always lead the charge in battle was all but
common sense in that kingdom. When faced with danger, hunkering down in a safe
room in the castle was not an option for them. Moreover, when their people were
being exposed to the threat of banditry, royals and nobles alike were expected
to be first on the scene with armies close behind. Failure to live up to this
image would cast doubt on their sense of justice, and therefore, the
rightfulness of their elevated status.
Remno had a similar culture. There, kings were
expected to be valiant and daring. Royalty who didn’t command armies held no
right to the throne. It was this culture that had once led to Abel spearheading
an army in person to quell a rebellion.
“It’s also possible that somebody could
purposefully take advantage of that expectation in Sunkland to bait Sion into
risking his life.”
Perhaps the bandit activity was a trap from
the start, and Sion was actually set up. Mia folded her arms and entered
deep-analysis mode.
“Wait, let me think about this... Maybe this
is actually fine? I-I mean, it’s not like it bothers me if Sion dies. He did
lop my head once, after all. And he can be so irritating sometimes. Besides...”
Deep-analysis mode lasted not even a minute
before she conceded, “No, I can’t just let him die. It’d leave a terrible
aftertaste.”
Had it happened without her knowledge, it’d be
different. To be in a position to prevent it from happening and not do so was
too heartless an option for her to bear.
“We’ve had our differences, but he did come to
my aid when I needed help. I owe him for that. Oh, and I guess there’s no
guarantee that whoever takes the throne in his place would be supportive of me.
And Bel’s pretty fond of him too...”
Soon, she made up her mind.
“Right. I think I do need to do something
about this.”
If this were a mere accident, she could simply
drop a line to either Sion and Keithwood and tell them to either send more soldiers
or beef up security.
“I probably can’t convince them to keep Sion
from heading out in the first place, though...”
That would be overstepping into domestic
affairs, not to mention a mere warning seemed futile in the face of Sion’s
personality.
“It’s also possible for this to be a Serpent
conspiracy.”
That line of thinking made more sense. It
seemed unlikely that sparring with a couple of bandits would lead to Sion
losing his life.
“He’s got a pretty mean sword arm, and
Keithwood’s with him too. There’s no way a random bandit would have any chance
of killing him.”
And if the Serpents were indeed involved, that
would significantly complicate matters.
“If we’re dealing with Serpents, I’d much
rather send Dion over, but that would probably dent Sunkland’s pride...”
The Empire’s Finest would doubtlessly
dismantle whatever nefarious traps they were laying, but she had no politically
viable excuse for dispatching him. A minor nation might have stomached any
complaints, but the Kingdom of Sunkland was on par with the empire in size and
strength alike. They probably wouldn’t look favorably upon a request to add a
Tearmoon agent to the unit tasked with guarding their crown prince.
“I mean, I’m sure Sunkland has plenty of
capable soldiers, but I can’t exactly just order them to tag along with Sion.”
She could often have her way with such
arrangements within the empire. If only this wasn’t a foreign affair.
“Ugh, it’s so frustrating how I can’t just
tell people I know what’s going to happen in the future. There must be
something I can do... Come on, think...”
At the current rate, all she could do was warn
him to be careful. Perhaps alerting him to the possibility of a conspiracy
would be enough. Or, perhaps, it wouldn’t be. She wasn’t entirely comfortable
with putting all her eggs in that shaky basket. Especially considering Sion
might take that as an opportunity to purposefully put himself in danger and
track down the mastermind behind it all.
“Hnnngh, this is giving me a headache...” she
grumbled.
“Excuse me, milady. Miss Esmeralda is here...”
Anne’s voice pulled Mia out of her mental
quagmire.
“Oh? Esmeralda? Hm...”
Mia rubbed her tummy.
“Hmm... I need to do a lot of thinking, and
sugar is the fuel of thought, so I think it’s time to do some refueling!”
For the time being, she turned her thoughts to
the delicacies Esmeralda had no doubt brought with her.
Chapter 8: Aboard the H.I.M.S. Mia
“Miss Mia! Oh, you won’t believe what just
happened to me!” cried Esmeralda upon entering the room.
“My, what’s the matter? You seem terribly
upset,” asked Mia as she snuck a glance at Esmeralda’s hand, from which
hung...absolutely nothing!
No delicacies!
As Mia visibly wilted, Anne poked her head in
to say, “Milady, Lady Esmeralda brought some baked sweets as a gift, so I’m
going to prepare them now.”
“My! Is that so, Esmeralda? You really don’t
have to, you know,” said Mia, immediately perking back up. Her mood was
entirely contingent on the existence of munchies.
“Oho ho, I can hardly show up empty-handed
now, can I? To be perfectly honest, it’s something a merchant brought us when
visiting...” said Esmeralda in an apologetic tone.
Mia, however, was pleased by the recycled
nature of the gift. It suggested that Esmeralda had taken her admonishment of
wasteful spending to heart and chosen not to purchase premium-quality sweets.
“And to be perfectly honest as well, good for
you, Esmeralda. I asked you to cut down on your spending, and that’s exactly
what you did. I’m so glad to hear it.”
In Mia’s eyes, all sweets were made equal, and
in no way were some sweets more equal than others. How and from where they were
procured was utterly irrelevant. In fact, if they were procured frugally from
an inexpensive source, that only made them better.
Once the two of them were seated at the table
and a number of teacakes were placed before them, Esmeralda returned to her
original subject matter.
“Anyway, as I was saying, you won’t believe
what happened to me, Miss Mia!” she cried. “My father is just the worst!”
“My, what happened with your father? I thought
you were on very good terms with him,” Mia asked half-heartedly.
Quarter-heartedly, really. The rest of her heart was focused on the teacakes.
They smelled so sweet. So sugary. Just as her nostrils
began palpitating in anticipation...
“Good terms?! Not anymore, no! He’s telling me
to get married! Can you believe it? He’s got the whole
thing arranged! Utterly unforgivable!” lamented an outraged Esmeralda.
“My... Congratulations, then...?”
For women of the nobility, a potential
marriage was a matter of great importance. Though Esmeralda was still a student
at Saint-Noel, she was old enough to be receiving a marriage proposal from time
to time.
“There’s nothing to congratulate here! He’s
trying to marry me off to a Sunkland noble!”
“Oh. Sunkland. I see...”
“Oh, uh, but even if I end up going to
Sunkland,” Esmeralda added hastily upon seeing Mia’s muted reaction, “rest
assured that I’ll still keep my promise with you, Miss Mia.”
Nevertheless, she was met with a quiet, “You
won’t be in Tearmoon anymore... It’s going to get lonely around here...”
Mia’s eyes remained downcast. It just so
happened that the angle perfectly aligned them with the teacakes on the table,
but perhaps that was entirely coincidence. After all, she was
very fond of the treats Esmeralda always brought for her, and their tea parties
were something she always looked forward to. Moreover, there weren’t a whole
lot of noble girls of similar age with whom she could share an honest chat.
Esmeralda was like an older cousin, and she had few, if any, replacements. If
her marriage took her to Sunkland, there would be far fewer chances for tea
parties. That was a rather dispiriting thought.
“Miss Mia...”
Looking up, Mia found to her surprise a
teary-eyed Esmeralda, whose expression soon gained a sheen of resolve.
“B-But don’t worry, because I’m going to
reject it, of course! I was always intending to. I’d never leave my best friend
behind to marry off to some foreign kingdom!” she declared with a determined
pump of her fists.
“Huh? Uh, you can get married if you want.
It’s not really—”
“No, I’ve decided! I’m going to tell them to
call it off! In fact, I’ll do it today! I’ve been invited to the royal castle
in Sunkland for a party, but they can take their party and stuff it—”
“Hold it.” Mia’s ears picked up a word she
couldn’t ignore. She eyed her friend questioningly. “Elaborate, please.”
“Hm? They invited me to their castle. If I get
married, I’ll be closer to their royal family, so they arranged a party as a
sort of icebreaker. Not that it matters, of course, since I won’t be going—”
“What do you mean you won’t be going? That’d
be such a waste. They put so much time and effort into arranging it, didn’t
they? You might as well go and enjoy yourself,” said Mia as a plan began to
take shape in her head. “In fact, I’ll go with you.”
How could she best save Sion from his
impending death? Without a doubt, it was to guard him. Preferably by having
Dion Alaia hang around him twenty-four seven. But even if she managed to
protect him from one attack, would it change his fate?
Probably not...
Her gut said no. The Serpents had gone
completely quiet since the winter, but she didn’t believe for a second that
they’d righted their scheming ways. If Sion’s assassination was indeed their
doing...
Stopping them once can’t possibly be enough. I’m
sure I’ll just end up finding a new passage in the Chronicles talking about how
he died some other way.
Recognizing this fact was good, but so long as
she remained in Tearmoon, the whole incident would be out of her reach. What
should she do then? The answer was obvious.
I need to get myself to Sunkland. That’s the most
reliable solution. I’ll need protection, so that gives me an excuse to bring
Dion along. Hm... Maybe I should ask our resident poison-expert Citrina to come
too. Poison is a staple of assassinations, after all. Also, I’ll probably have
to spend a good few nights there, and I’ll definitely feel better with some
bodyguards who can always stay within close proximity, so I’ll try asking Tiona
and Liora too...
Now, standard protocol dictated that a
Tearmoon princess could not simply declare she was heading to Sunkland out of
the blue and expect to leave any time soon. Guard convoys had to be arranged,
and Sunkland needed time to prepare things on their end as well. Her excursion
to Perujin certainly happened earlier than planned, but that was the thing—it
had already been planned. They’d simply shifted the schedule up a little. As
for the time she went to Remno... Well, she’d thrown protocol out the window
for that, so it wasn’t exactly a viable reference. She couldn’t sneak her way
into Sunkland—not if she wanted to get close enough to Sion to protect him.
That required her to enter their kingdom through official means.
Fortunately, if I claim to be going as a member
of Esmeralda’s retinue, it might just work. Instead of an official sojourn by
the princess of Tearmoon, it’s an Etoiline paying them a visit, and I’m just
along for the ride.
When it came to Tearmoon VIPs, Esmeralda was
second only to Mia. The necessary preparations for a daughter of the Four Dukes
to head abroad wasn’t too different from that of the princess. Most
importantly, said preparations were already done. They just had to beef up the
security ever so slightly.
All things considered, it
seemed...surprisingly feasible. To her, at least. To any official tasked with
implementing this sudden change, it was nothing short of a nightmare, but their
future screams of frustration did not reach the present ears of Mia. Unaware of
this discrepancy between reality and expectation, she continued to plot out the
ensuing parts of her plan, effectively engaging in unhatched-chicken-counting.
Hmm... Once I save Sion, the whole royal family
of Sunkland’s going to owe me a big favor. That’ll come in very handy when I’m
doing the empress thing!
Arms folded, she nodded to herself.
“I’m going with you, so make some room for me—
Huh?”
As she turned her attention back to Esmeralda,
she found her friend teary-eyed once again.
“Oooh, Nina...” Esmeralda sobbed, looking to
her nearby attendant. “D-Did you hear? Miss Mia said she’s coming along to
cancel my marriage for me... She’s going to tell them to their face!”
“Yes, I certainly did hear, milady. I’m glad
for you,” replied Nina, in her usual dispassionate tone as she held out a
handkerchief.
Esmeralda took it and dabbed at her eyes.
“Thank you, Miss Mia. This means a lot. It
really does. To know you’re willing to go so far for me...”
The sheer earnesty of her joy made Mia feel a
tad guilty, so she decided to throw her friend a bone. Placing her arms on her
hips, she declared, “Wh-Why of course I’d be willing to. We’re best friends,
aren’t we? Now that I’m coming with you, you can rest easy, because Captain Mia
is at the helm!”
And so the H.I.M.S. (Her Imperial Majesty’s
Ship) Mia set sail bearing the weight of both Esmeralda’s and Sion’s future.
Did its wave-riding captain have what it takes to navigate the stormy seas
ahead? Only time would tell.
Chapter 9: Ludwig...Gets the Hint
With her mind made up, Mia promptly began
preparing for her trip to Sunkland. First, she summoned Ludwig and asked him to
arrange her guard convoy.
“Understood. I shall put together a squad
composed of our most competent Princess Guard then.” Long accustomed to keeping
up with the abrupt nature of Mia’s whims, he let out a resigned sigh.
“I’ll leave it to you then,” said Mia. “Oh,
and I’d like to take Dion with me as well. Will that be all right?”
“Sir Dion, you say...” Ludwig nudged the
bridge of his glasses contemplatively as he regarded her. “Should I take that
to mean there is sufficient danger surrounding this excursion to warrant his
presence?”
“Maybe. It’s a precaution.” She shrugged.
“Obviously, the best-case scenario is that it ends up being perfectly safe, but
you never know, and I can’t exactly take an army with me into Sunkland. A small
force of elite guards is simply our most feasible choice.”
She also couldn’t declare outright that she
was going to prevent Sion from being killed. With her daredevil antics this
past winter putting Ludwig thoroughly on edge, Mia was well aware that she’d
really been pushing it lately. Even if her plan was to
stop an assassination on Sunkland’s crown prince, Mia doubted that Ludwig would
just let her go willy-nilly. And so she decided to fudge her reasoning.
“...I see.”
To her unease, he regarded her for a while
before doing that uncomfortably penetrating stare-while-adjusting-glasses
gesture.
“In that case, I shall accompany Your Highness
to Sunkland.”
“Huh?”
“Abrupt developments like this tend to beget
unforeseen problems. My presence may prove useful. I’ve also been meaning to
have some private words with Sunkland’s administration.”
“But aren’t you—”
“All right then, I shall excuse myself now. I
need to arrange substitutes for my work before we depart.”
He left before Mia could get another word in.
“Huh. Well, I guess it can’t hurt to have him along. Maybe this is for the better.”
It wasn’t like she could unravel the
conspiracy herself. Her involvement was just an excuse to get her ace in the
hole, Dion, into Sunkland. That solved the brawn side of the equation, but she
still needed to get some brains. The only concern was how Ludwig’s absence
would impact all the problems he was currently dealing with in the empire.
“Knowing him, though, he’ll probably make sure
everything keeps spinning like clockwork,” she murmured to herself.
Trusting Ludwig to handle everything on his
side, she turned her attention to the next part of her preparations and penned
a letter to Tiona in the Rudolvon domain. This past winter had convinced Mia
that Tiona and Liora could both pull some serious weight in battle.
“I’ll feel a lot safer with them around. There
are plenty of places where I can’t have men following me, after all, and Anne’s
not much of a fighter.”
There was one more person she’d prefer to
bring—someone who could prove to be invaluable in a pinch.
“Hmm... Yes, I should definitely bring her,” Mia mused. “Anne, I need to head out for a bit, so get
things ready for me, could you?”
“Right away, milady, but could I ask where
we’re going?” asked her slightly concerned maid.
Mia smiled. “Don’t worry. I’m heading to
downtown Lunatear where all the nobles live.”
Citrina Etoile Yellowmoon currently resided in
a villa located in the imperial capital of Lunatear. As for why Mia was privy
to this information... Well, it was because Citrina came this morning to visit
Bel. After hearing that her friend had returned from Perujin, she’d shown up at
the Whitemoon Palace in high spirits and invited Bel to her villa.
“She claimed they were going to study, but I’d
be surprised if they even went so far as to flip open a textbook.”
Mia knew her granddaughter. Without a stern
guardian looking over her, there was no way she was actually going to study.
“Lynsha’s gone home for a while, so I guess
I’ll have to play her role in the meantime,” Mia muttered as she walked up to
the Yellowmoon villa.
It was a large mansion, larger than the
residences of most nobles, and Mia caught herself staring in fascination at its
vine-covered walls and the veritable jungle that was its front yard.
I-I wonder if all of these
are poisonous... she thought as she stepped into
the building with her guards. They were shown to a wide courtyard inside. Here,
well-pruned flowers decorated a far tamer garden. At the far corner was a table
where Citrina could be seen sitting. In front of her, Bel was...
Bel was dancing!
“And then, right here, you hit the clappers.”
Using her hands as makeshift clappers, she
struck them together. Evidently she was demonstrating to Citrina the dance
she’d performed in Perujin. Or trying to, at least.
“And then, you do this!” She spun a few times,
then clapped again before posing triumphantly.
“Oh moons, she literally did every step
wrong,” mumbled Mia.
The girl’s dancing was just...kind of...
It’s hard to pinpoint what’s wrong, but the whole
thing just feels...off. Also, what is it with this girl and her ability to get
everything wrong in the dance, yet still act like she just pulled off the most
impressive feat ever? It’s...actually pretty amazing. Maybe I should be more
like her...
Feeling a newfound admiration for her
granddaughter, she walked over.
“Ah, Miss Mia. You’re here!” Bel smiled upon
seeing her.
“Good day to you, Your Highness. Welcome to
the Yellowmoon villa.” Citrina stood up and curtsied, the smiling gesture sweet
and lovely like spring flowers.
And this girl’s still as cute as a doll...
“Good day to you too, Rina. Is your father
doing well?”
“Yes, he’s quite fine, and he sends his
regards.”
“Good. Oh, but remind him to cut back on the
cookies, okay? Because eating too many sweet things will, in fact, shorten your
lifespan. Did you know that?” Feeling a little overshadowed by the others, Mia
promptly presented this piece of—shamelessly appropriated from
Tatiana—prophylactic wisdom, which sufficiently impressed the young’uns for her
to flash a smug grin.
Chapter 10: Princess Mia...Begins Her True Business!
“By the way, Bel, just a friendly reminder,”
said Mia. “Don’t get too carried away.”
“Carried away? With what?” Bel asked with a
quizzical tilt of the head.
“You were demonstrating the dance we did in
Perujin just now, weren’t you?”
“Oh, yes, I was. Rina really wanted to see
it.” Bel gestured at her friend.
“I did ask her to show Rina,” said Citrina. “I
was curious what kind of dance it was.”
“That’s fine. The thing is, Bel, you were
getting a lot of it wrong,” said Mia, observing Citrina out of the corner of
her eye. “If you’re going to show someone, make sure you do it right.”
Hm, I see what’s going on here. Rina’s
disappointed that she didn’t get to go to Perujin with Bel. I’d be a fool not
to take advantage of this. It’s just like they say: shoot the horse to fell the
rider. If I want Rina to come with me, all I have to do is bring Bel!
Having quickly identified her opponent’s weak
point, she turned to Bel.
“Oh, and Bel, I know this is short notice, but
I’m thinking of going to Sunkland with Esmeralda.”
“Huh? You’re going to Sunkland?!”
She grinned at the sudden flare of excitement.
For Mia, who knew that Bel was short for not “Miabel” but “Maniabel,”
manipulating her granddaughter was like taking candy from a baby.
There’s no way she’d give up a chance to visit
Sion’s homeland. I’ve got her good.
As expected, Bel nodded vigorously when asked
if she’d like to follow. Seeing her reaction, Citrina’s shoulders slumped
visibly.
“There were so many games I wanted to play
with you...”
Mia resisted the urge to scream “I knew it! I knew you weren’t going to study!” and said, “On that note,
Rina, why don’t you come along too?”
Citrina blinked with surprise. “Huh? I can go
too?”
“Certainly,” said Mia with a smiling nod. “If
you’re free, of cour—”
“Yes, I’m free! I’m very free! Thank you for
inviting Rina, Your Highness!” Citrina exclaimed as she dropped into a deep
bow. “You have my eternal gratitude and admiration.”
“Eternal gratitude and admiration sounds like
the kind of thing you should save for a more substantial occasion, but sure, I
guess. But shouldn’t we check with your father first?”
“Oh, don’t worry about him. Father loves Rina
to bits. He’d never say no to a request like this,” she replied with a smile
which, while still sweet and flowerlike, was somehow more reminiscent of
flytrap plants than garden daisies.
“Uh... Okay then. If you say so. Oh, and by
the way...” Mia leaned in to whisper in her ear. “Would you mind bringing a few
antidotes with you? Preferably the ones used to treat poisons often used for
assassinations.”
“...Antidotes? Not the poisons themselves?”
asked Citrina, frowning.
“No.” Mia shook her head. “The antidotes,
please. And let me make one thing clear: I find assassinations to be a dreadful
means to an end, and you’ll never find me asking you to harm another through
poison, nor will I ever allow anyone to do so.”
After all, it’d be a nightmare if she were to
assassinate someone and they ended up doing the same backwards time leap.
I’m a kind and forgiving person, so I’d never try
to get back at Sion or Tiona, but there’s no guarantee the assassinatee would
be so nice to me...
Since killing someone would always be risky,
she avoided the option altogether. She even avoided creating any situations
that would present the option in the first place. “Don’t make enemies” was the
life philosophy to which she adhered. You never know where or when somebody
might pull a Mia; in case they did, she didn’t want to be their target of
vengeance.
“Besides, I’d never ask a friend of Bel to
stain her hands with blood,” she stated with conviction before adding, “but I would appreciate it if you’d help me prevent any blood from
being spilled. The situation this time is a little concerning.”
“Concerning...”
“Yes. It’s high time the Serpents started
making a move. I’d prefer to be safe than sorry. To that end, I find myself in
need of Yellowmoon’s expertise. Will you lend it to me?”
Citrina’s back straightened at the formal
wording. “Consider it lent, Your Highness. Every shred of knowledge in the
Yellowmoon reservoir is yours to use. Command Rina as you wish.”
“Thank you, Rina. I can ask for nothing more.”
With Citrina on board, Mia’s dream team was
more or less complete. She had Dion and the Princess Guard to defend against
acts of physical violence—gang of bandits or otherwise—Ludwig to strategically
foil nefarious schemes, and Citrina to counter assassinations through poison.
It’d be perfect if she could add Tatiana as a medic, but she was currently too
far away to be summoned in time.
“I can’t be too greedy. This is already a
pretty impressive lineup. All that’s left is for me to do my part...”
And so, Mia began the work that was hers and
hers only—her true business.
“Let’s see now... What are Sunkland’s local
specialties, and how many of them have mushrooms...?”
Mia’s Sunkland Sojourn to Savor
Save Sion was officially underway!
Sadly, despite paying so many visits to so
many people, Mia had forgotten to pay the most crucial visit of them all—to her
father, Matthias Luna Tearmoon.
“You’re going to Sunkland?!” The emperor was
furious upon hearing her plans. “But what about our father-daughter bonding
time? I had so much planned for the summer! Bah, in that case, I shall spend my
summer in Sunkland too! I’m coming with—”
“No, father! Please! I’m trying to keep the
whole thing as low-key as possible!”
Though she’d ultimately convince her father to
stay put, it would take daily persuasion sessions lasting until the very day of
her departure before she found success.
Chapter 11: Surely... Probably...
Ever since it was decided that we’d be going to
Sunkland, Her Highness hasn’t been herself.
Ludwig frowned as he peered into a room in the
Grand Library of the Tearmoon Empire where Mia sat muttering to herself.
It must be as I suspected, he thought. There is far more to this journey than meets the eye. And it’s
something of great importance.
When she first told him about her intention to
go to Sunkland, he’d thought of two potential reasons.
The first was, of course, political
friend-making—talking to people as a means of laying groundwork for future
undertakings. The Kingdom of Sunkland was Tearmoon’s rival in strength and
scale. If Mia wished to become empress, she needed much more than Sion’s
support alone.
The second was Esmeralda’s marriage proposal.
As an Etoiline, she was one of Mia’s greatest allies. While Mia had established
promising relationships with the other scions of the Four Houses as well, the
one she trusted most was without a doubt the young lady of Greenmoon. So long
as the Four Dukes’ support remained crucial to controlling the central
nobility, Esmeralda would always be an extremely important asset.
And now, someone—rather, a group of
someones—was trying to get her out of Tearmoon.
There are forces in play that are clearly opposed
to Her Highness becoming empress... This must be their attempt to weaken her
faction.
That much was both clear and perfectly
comprehensible to him. He also understood how Mia’s visit to Sunkland
functioned as a counter. It would make domestic opposition think twice before
pursuing further plans while simultaneously allowing her to probe their
connections in Sunkland. Furthermore, it was a show of solidarity for
Esmeralda. The issue was...
She’s bringing Sir Dion. That is some serious
food for thought.
He agreed that having some precautionary
muscle was necessary, but the Princess Guard should have been more than enough.
Why bring the one-man-army that was Dion Alaia? What required his overwhelming
presence?
“The only reasonable assumption...is that
whatever’s lurking in the shadows, it’s dangerous enough to warrant his
presence. In that case, I should prepare accordingly as well,” he murmured
contemplatively before walking over to Mia.
“Your Highness...”
“My, Ludwig. Are you here to do some
research?”
“Yes. It has become painfully clear to me the
other day that Miss Bel is lacking a great deal of fundamentals in her
education.”
Having heard that Bel would be coming along
for the Sunkland trip, Ludwig was planning to give her a pre-departure crash
course on...pretty much everything. That wasn’t why he was here, though; he had
come to check on Mia. Admitting his concern, however, was an act of emotional
honesty far beyond him.
“Judging by her performance, I can tell that
she is receiving some instruction, but I fear her
tutor may be out of their depth. It is likely that the method of instruction is
somewhat lacking. One must know when to be stern and when to be lenient.
Effective integration of the two is crucial for education.”
Mia’s reaction was in the form of pursed lips,
the meaning ambiguous.
“...Okay. Then do as you see fit. But within
reason, all right? For sanity purposes.”
“Of course. To damage the mental soundness of
a student is a sign of extreme incompetence on the part of the educator.”
“I was talking about your
sanity...”
“I’m sorry?”
Mia gave no direct reply. Instead, she pursed
her lips again before saying, “Never mind. I’ll leave it to you.”
“Understood.” Ludwig nodded before adding,
“Might I ask if Your Highness is also in the process of research?”
“Hm? Oh, yes, I suppose so. We’re going to
Sunkland, after all, and I figured I’d...read up on them beforehand. Figure out
what’s going on there, you know? So I can make plans for the trip.”
Spread atop her table was a map of the entire
kingdom of Sunkland. Surrounding it were numerous opened books detailing the
industries and townscapes of various regions.
“I see. Your Highness never fails to impress.”
There was a clear and important goal to
accomplish for this visit to Sunkland, but evidently, that wasn’t Mia’s sole
focus. It seemed like she intended to tour the kingdom, and it made perfect
sense for her to do so. They might as well take advantage of the opportunity to
gather as much intelligence as possible. The breadth of her attention and the
intensely rational way in which she optimized her time was a breathtaking sight
to behold.
Food is the root of all industries, and its
production is an essential factor for the empire’s future growth. Doubtlessly,
she’s refining her understanding of the food circumstances in other nations to
improve her judgment when she becomes empress. Her unquenchable thirst for
knowledge and unwavering rationalism are surely what makes her the Great Sage
of the Empire. Her Highness indeed never fails to impress...
Never fails to impress? What’s so impressive, I
wonder...
Mia tilted her head quizzically at the comment
before turning back to the book in her hand. It described the local delicacies
of each region in Sunkland, as well as the popular dishes in each town. Nothing
about its contents seemed like the kind of thing that would impress Ludwig.
But then again, I am doing something
that deserves praise, so I’ll gladly take the compliment.
And she was right! Mia had, in fact, been
using her head. And thinking about properly serious things, to boot! After much
contemplation, she’d decided not to inform Sunkland about the fact that she’d
be accompanying Esmeralda. She was simply going to show up as a member of her
retinue. The goal of this secrecy was to keep uncertain elements to a minimum.
As a seasoned reader of prophetic books, Mia knew that the future was a
surprisingly delicate thing, easily altered in unpredictable ways by the
slightest of her actions. Applied to her current situation, it meant that
Sion’s exact circumstances of death—the where and when—were highly liable to
change.
For example, if I told him I’m going as a
classmate, he’d probably feel obligated to welcome me. Maybe even meet me at
the border. That might keep him away from danger, but it also might not. I have
no way of knowing how he might welcome me, so he still might end up dying the
exact same way.
Furthermore, his journey to the border could
potentially expose him to some other unforeseen danger. A simple skirmish with
bandits might be preventable in this fashion, but an elaborate conspiracy to
take his life could very well follow him wherever he went.
That would only complicate matters. I’d rather
have things happen the way they’re currently described in the book.
That was why she’d been racking her brains the
past few days—to find a way to insert herself into the story such that she’d be
beside Sion on the day of his assassination without drastically changing any of
the other details. Granted, it was placing Dion beside Sion that was actually
important, but his role as her guardian made that discrepancy an excusable
technicality.
And in order to do that, I need to make a detour
somewhere. But where?!
That question was her biggest headache. The
route that Esmeralda had planned wouldn’t take them through the location of
Sion’s murder. Fate apparently wasn’t willing to make things that
easy for her.
Ideally, the detour takes me through places with
lots of good food and exotic mushrooms. If I can get some fruit picking and
mushroom hunting done too, that would be best.
The questionable nature of her considerations
notwithstanding, the choice was indeed a tricky one. It was necessary to choose
a detour route that made sense for her to request; it’d be too unnatural
otherwise. Asking to stay a couple days in the middle of nowhere would cause
people to ask all sorts of questions. Worse yet, Esmeralda might get bored, and
a bored Esmeralda was a dangerous Esmeralda.
Hmm... Famous Sunkland dishes... Hm, hm... I see.
Their river fish is good. Which means I can add this riverside town to the
list. Then...
It was all so she could save Sion without
behaving unnaturally. The meticulousness with which she planned her route was
by no means in service of a secret desire to turn the trip into a sightseeing,
food-feasting leisure tour through Sunkland. Surely, she was thinking about properly serious things.
“Oho, these dried mushrooms are a local
specialty of Sunkland? I wonder where I can buy some...”
...Probably.
Chapter 12: The Royal Council
Inside Solecsudo Castle, the royal castle of
the Kingdom of Sunkland, was a room with a rectangular table. Seven men sat
around it. The one seated at the most central position was tall and firmly
built with silver hair and sharp eyes. His ornate clothing marked him as King
Abram Sol Sunkland.
Abram frowned as he listened to a report from
his chancellor.
“A group of bandits unusually competent on
horseback, you say...”
“That is correct, Your Majesty. They were able
to outride our best cavalry and escape. Ordinary brigands, these are not. I
suspect them to be agents of that roving Equestrian Kingdom.”
“Intriguing... Sion, tell me your thoughts on
the matter.”
Sion straightened at his father’s gaze. “Yes,
Your Majesty. I...believe we should avoid passing judgment too eagerly.”
“...And the reasoning for your caution?”
“Conflict between nations will cause much of
the populace to suffer. It is premature to place the blame on the Equestrian
Kingdom. I cannot imagine them attacking us for sport, and they have no reason
to do so otherwise.”
“Ah, Your Highness is wise, but still young,”
said Count Lampron, a noble whose pride for Sunkland and loyalty to his king
exuded from every pore. He chuckled loudly. “Not all rulers are gifted with
Your Highness’s wisdom. You should not expect other kingdoms to behave as
sensibly as our glorious kingdom.”
“Mindless expansionism fuels the actions of
many nations. There is no shortage of foolish rulers who will invade others
without just cause simply to conquer more land.”
“Your language is a tad too provocative for
these peaceful times, Count Lampron. To some ears, they may resemble the words
of a warmonger,” added another participant.
“Oh? I didn’t expect to hear that from you of
all people.”
The Royal Council was a meeting of nobility
where members engaged in political fencing. Sion, who’d had no intention of
engaging with the affairs of governance until graduating from Saint-Noel, had
never felt much love for the assembly. His experiences at school, however, had
slightly changed his perspective. Needless to say, he was most heavily
influenced by the princess of Tearmoon who, despite being the same age as him,
was actively pushing for reformations in her empire.
I wonder what Mia and the others are doing right
now...
In his mind’s eye, he saw again her
purple-clad figure. His ears, though, heard the voice of a different girl.
Tell her while I still can, or I’ll regret it,
huh...?
Tiona’s words—so earnest, so urgent—reverberated against his skull. There certainly were
words he wished to speak to her.
Judging by how often Mia occupies my thoughts,
I’m probably... But do I, as I am right now, have the right to tell her how I
feel?
His misstep in Reno haunted him to this day.
Bitter regret, made harsher by the recognition of his own immaturity, pressed
down on his chest like an anvil, keeping the words from reaching his mouth.
I’ll make up for my past failures, but I’ll earn
the chance myself. I said that, and I still stand by it. But...
His rumination was interrupted by a sudden
shift in the room’s atmosphere. One member’s comment had set the whole council
astir.
“Recently, I’ve received reports about
Equestrian troops roaming near the border. The two can’t possibly be unrelated.
For the sake of the people living there, it is imperative that we deploy the
army immediately, if for nothing else than to assuage the fears of local
Sunkland citizens,” exclaimed an increasingly animated Lampron.
In terms of the political spectrum, he
belonged to the conservative side, which valued tradition and espoused Sunkland
expansionism. They asserted that rather than suffer under an incompetent king,
it was preferable for people to be ruled by the King of Sunkland who, in his
glorious wisdom, would bring them closer to prosperity. It was, incidentally,
the very belief embraced by the White Crow, Graham. These expansionists were,
by nature, frequently dismissive of the sovereignty of other nations.
Sion quietly sighed before speaking up in a
commanding voice. “Your Majesty, at the current time, there is no need to get
the army involved. With your permission, I shall organize a detachment of
troops and personally lead them there to investigate the situation.”
The Royal Council was a place where myriad
motives and interests clashed above and under the table. It was politics in its
purest form, forcing its participants to weather sentiments both good and bad.
To survive it, one had to swallow the honey with the bile. To harness it,
swallow eagerly. Sion yet swallowed with difficulty, but he continued to do so,
for he never lost sight of why he was here.
Was it his conviction? His commitment to
upholding what was fair and right? No, it was not. The bitter events of that
day had shifted the beam of his scale of justice.
What would Mia do?
Recalibrated by the Great Sage of the
Empire—who neither intended nor knew how to do so—his scale now possessed a
corrected set of values, allowing him to weigh situations against the
philosophical masses to determine what was truly just.
“The sword of justice given to us royals is a
sharp one. It cuts well and fast, but it cannot mend. Should we use it in
error, many will suffer,” he declared as he held his father’s gaze.
“Is it not too dangerous for Your Highness to
go in person?” asked an attending noble.
Sion shook his head at the call for caution.
“Negligence of people who suffer chips away at the very base upon which the
royal family of Sunkland stands. It damages our right to rule. However, we must
also take care not to recklessly cause new suffering through our own actions.
Finding the truth is imperative, and I ask again, Your Majesty, for your
permission to do so.”
He rose, walked in front of his father, and
dropped to one knee as he bowed his head. The king regarded him with a look of
satisfaction.
“I see... Very well,” the king said, nodding
firmly. “Your request is granted. You are now specially and formally ordered to
lead a detachment of troops and subdue the bandits in question.”
Thus, it was decided that Sion would command a
freshly organized military detachment tasked with eliminating the bandits.
“Another ten out of ten on the reckless scale.
Have you ever considered walking away from danger
every once in a while, milord?” said Keithwood with profound exasperation after
hearing about Sion’s new appointment. “Have you ever considered the
consequences to Sunkland if something were to happen to you? Actually, I’m sure
you have, which only makes it more baffling...”
“Come on, Keithwood. Lighten up. It’s like
they say: ‘the path to a benevolent king is paved with nervous attendants.’”
“They definitely
don’t say that.”
Sion gave him a reassuring grin. It failed to
have its intended effect.
The way he’s been behaving lately... thought Keithwood. It’s like he’s rushing to get something done. There’s a strange sense
of anxiousness, even desperation...
Keithwood could even pinpoint the exact time
when Sion’s behavior had changed. It was last winter. Specifically, after
they’d attended Princess Mia’s birthday festival at the Tearmoon capital.
Did something happen that day? Nothing in
particular comes to mind, but...
Just then, while they were preparing for
Sion’s departure...
“Sion!”
A young boy not yet in his teens came dashing
toward them. His neatly trimmed hair was the same shade of silver as Sion, but
his body lacked the toughened musculature of regular training. Unlike the older
boy, he exuded an aura of delicate fragility.
Echard Sol Sunkland, who was turning ten this
year, was the second prince of Sunkland and younger brother of Sion.
“Sion, I heard the news. Are you really going
to exterminate the bandits yourself?” asked Echard, eyes blinking with concern.
Sion smiled in an attempt to comfort his
brother. “That’s right. And I’ll be accompanied by only the best of our
soldiers. That’s not to say I’ll be letting down my guard either. Plus,
Keithwood’ll be there. I’ll be fine.”
“But... But if something were to happen to
you...”
“Ha ha ha, you worry too much, Lord Echard.
When His Highness was your age, he was already besting grown men at swordplay,”
quipped an aging knight nearby.
The comment prompted a round of praise about
Sion’s ability from the surrounding soldiers.
“His Highness is a genius swordsman. No bandit
will be his match.”
“You’d know if you learned from him, Lord
Echard. Why don’t you ask His Highness for some lessons?”
Echard smiled uncomfortably at the chuckling
knights.
That really isn’t doing the
boy any favors... Glancing sideward at the
exchange, Keithwood bit his lip. It was obvious to him that Echard was
struggling with a great deal of stress, owing mostly to the crushing envy he
felt toward his brother. Discord between the two princes could be exploited by
politically-minded nobles for partisan gain. I can’t exactly
wade into this though. It’s not my place to speak.
There was a small but undeniable rift between
the two princes, and Keithwood could but hope that it would not grow any wider.
Chapter 13: Girls Talk... Girls Talk?
Pilgrimage Road was a major thoroughfare that
connected the Holy Principality of Belluga to various other nations in the
continent. It was a physical representation of the old adage, “All roads lead
to Belluga.” Maintained by the Central Orthodox Church, it was well-paved and
wide, even considering the heavy traffic it sustained. There was enough space
for horse carriages to pass by one another without stopping.
It was on this route that Mia’s group
traveled, passing through Belluga to head toward Sunkland. After meeting up
with Tiona’s crew midway, they became quite the presence on the road,
consisting of seven carriages and numerous escorting cavalry. Granted, riding
in one of the carriages was the princess of Tearmoon; in that sense, it was—if
anything—still on the more unassuming side.
“Ugh, father sure was a tough nut to crack.”
Mia heaved a deep sigh in the trundling
carriage. Her father had adamantly insisted on going with her and refused to be
persuaded otherwise until, in a fit of desperation, she’d given him the “I love
you, dad, so pretty please?” treatment. Delivered in expressionless monotone,
of course, but it worked.
“That was a herculean effort of persuasion.
Moons, he’s so stubborn,” she grumbled, weariness written plain on her face.
Esmeralda shook her head. “Oh, don’t say that.
His Imperial Majesty cares very much about you.” She smiled gently at Mia, but
then let out a sigh of similar weariness. “Besides, if we’re talking about
stubborn fathers, then I’ve definitely got you beat. I told mine I’m not
interested in the marriage proposal, and he was having none of it. He wouldn’t
listen to a word I said. You were right all along. Going to decline the offer
directly like this is definitely the correct decision.”
“My, I’m glad you think that. But isn’t it
possible that the potential groom might turn out to be a pretty good fellow?
And if he’s from a Duke’s family, it might even be a pretty good match. Who
knows? Maybe Lord Greenmoon is actually looking out for you,” Mia said in a
reproving tone.
But her words were at odds with her thoughts.
I wonder if Lord Greenmoon is trying to distance
Esmeralda from the family...
As a matter of fact, Esmeralda had a younger
brother five years her junior. The boy, far from feeling inferior to his much
older sister, was actually extremely fond of her. So fond as to be excessive.
At times, the way he followed her around bore resemblance to an underling
trailing a boss he admired. Or a poodle scampering after his beloved owner.
Esmeralda can be quite the handful, but she’s
actually a pretty caring person. Selfish and unreasonable at times, but I can
see why he’d admire her. Still, she really can be such a headache
sometimes...
The point is, at the current rate, the next
head of the Greenmoons would end up becoming a wimpy softie with
sister-attachment issues. It should also be noted that said softie was once
considered as a future husband for Mia, but the talks ultimately fell apart.
Blood too thick grows muddy and summons calamity.
Due to this ancient adage, marriages between
close relatives were generally shunned within the Tearmoon Empire. The
relationship between Esmeralda’s brother and Mia, though toeing the line of
permissibility, was technically not forbidden. However...
“My brother is hardly a match for Miss Mia!” Esmeralda had adamantly
opposed the arrangement. “Miss Mia is an imperial princess.
She deserves— No, she requires a suitable partner who is in every
way a match for her. My little brother...falls a smidge short of her standards.
Very short, if I’m being honest!”
As a connoisseur of male handsomeness, she had
high standards for the quality of young men, which she applied to even her own
family. Given these tendencies of hers, it was perhaps possible that Duke
Greenmoon didn’t want her to stay at home indefinitely. Or so Mia surmised, at
least.
“By the way, Esmeralda, what are you going to
do if he turns out to be a dazzlingly handsome fellow?”
“Hmm, good question. I suppose I can spare a
space for him in my bodyguard squad. I doubt he’d be up to snuff, though.
People fit for an Etoiline like me are few and far between.” Esmeralda laughed
before striking her palm with inspiration. “Oh, I know! Since we’re coming all
this way, why not give them an option instead of refusing them outright? I’ll
tell them that if they want me to marry into Sunkland, they’ll have to bring me
a prince!”
“Uh, you mean Sion? I wouldn’t if I were you.
He’s...not someone you can handle.”
She tried to imagine Sion and Esmeralda
getting married. Nothing came. She literally could not fathom the scene.
“In terms of personality, the only people I
can think of who’d be a match for Sion are Miss Rafina and, uh... Hm...”
Suddenly, she remembered the name of a girl.
Currently, the girl was in a carriage behind her, but once upon a time, the
girl had driven Mia from opulence to destitution and finally onto the
guillotine. She was the O.G. Saint of Tearmoon, Tiona Rudolvon.
Hm, that reminds me. I wonder if Tiona and Sion
got together after I died...
She’d never cared enough to devote any thought
to the developments after her execution, but the two had looked to be a perfect
couple in the previous timeline. Even Mia, when she wasn’t busy running for
dear life, had thought so. A powerful curiosity gripped her. What fate had
awaited the two afterward? Did their lives ultimately intertwine?
Her distant gaze annoyed Esmeralda, who
followed it to find nothing but another carriage.
“Honestly, though, I still don’t know why you
asked Miss Tiona to come with us. Is there something you want her to do?”
“...Okay, this shouldn’t bear mentioning, but
just so we’re clear, Tiona is my friend. I don’t want to hear any nonsense
about how her being an outland noble makes her less of one,” Mia warned
preemptively.
Esmeralda gave a knowing nod.
“Of course. It couldn’t be clearer. A friend
of yours is a friend of mine. If anyone gives her a hard time, I’ll be at her
side to help her,” she declared. Then, after a breath, she added, “Because
we’re best friends, and as your best friend, I’d never do something that makes
you sad! That’s how best friends are!”
“I-I see. Well. Good. Keep, uh...doing that
then.”
The confidence displayed by Esmeralda was not
in any way shared by her ostensible best friend.
Chapter 14: A Gathering of Rabid Fans
“Well, this is going rather poorly.”
Ludwig gazed out the window of his carriage at
the rural scenery. The gentle morning sun that had been streaming down onto the
calm country road was slowly gaining the heat of noon. It was long past their
scheduled departure time, but the carriage showed no hints of moving.
Abruptly, the carriage door swung open, and
Dion Alaia stepped in. He removed his sword from his waist and plopped himself
down on the seat. “Looks like it’s gonna be a while before they get it fixed.
Damn carriage picked a fine time to break down, didn’t it?”
The trouble had begun the morning after Mia’s procession
had departed from the village they’d stayed in. Not long after hitting the
road, one of the carriages had suffered a broken wheel. After briefly
considering the option of having the rest of the crew go ahead, they’d opted to
wait for the repairs to be completed, seeing as the impaired vehicle was an
expensive Greenmoon carriage. Fortunately, they could see for miles in every
direction, making it unlikely for anyone to sneak up on them. At the very
least, waiting here posed little risk to their safety.
“And? The patrol report?”
“All clear. I wouldn’t worry; we got the
Princess Guard, and the Greenmoons sent a decently sized squad too. Plus,
Sunkland sent their due diligence. They’re welcoming a daughter of one of the
Four Dukes, after all. If I were a bandit, I wouldn’t even get close to us,
never mind attempt a hit.”
Dion gazed out the same window with narrowed
eyes.
“And I’m pretty sure the princess knows that
too, which means...whatever’s out there, it ain’t bandits. It’s something
trickier. Something you can’t deal with just by having a bunch of soldiers with
you.”
Ludwig nodded his agreement. “We also happen
to be heading in the direction that the wolfmaster fled.”
The wolfmaster, a Chaos Serpent assassin, had
come uncomfortably close to taking Mia’s life before he was forced to escape.
Under orders from Ludwig, a pursuing party had tried to hunt him down, only to
lose track of him. Notably, it was on the outskirts of Sunkland where he’d
vanished from sight. He hadn’t been seen since.
“Yeah,” Dion responded, “and if that bad boy
shows up, regular guards aren’t going to stand a chance. We’re gonna need to
surround him with hordes of men to deal with him, and we haven’t even
considered his wolves yet. I get why the princess is being extra cautious.”
“I see,” said Ludwig. “I’ll leave matters of
security to you, then. Do what you need to keep us safe. Her Highness
especially. If any harm befalls her, I don’t know how I’d explain it to
everyone.”
“You mean your Empress Faction buddies?”
“Yes. Speaking of which, I haven’t introduced
any of them except Gil to you. I’ve been meaning to do so, but...” Ludwig
recalled the time he met with a number of them to discuss the delegation of
work during his absence.
That day, Ludwig had rushed toward an abandoned
mansion in the capital, where he and his faction members had agreed to meet.
Upon arriving and entering a room in the mansion, he was greeted by a familiar
voice.
“Damn, Ludwig, you finally made it!” exclaimed
Balthazar. “Well? Out with it. Let’s hear the delicious details of your Perujin
trip.”
Gilbert, along with about a dozen others, was
also present.
“By god, man, at least let me sit down. What’s
gotten into you?” Ludwig frowned. Balthazar was usually a very composed
individual, not disposed to vocal outbursts.
“What’s gotten into me?
You and your princess have gotten into me! What’s this about potential treaty
reform with Perujin? That’s the kind of thing that makes history!”
“Well then. News sure travels fast. Yes, what
you heard is correct. Her Highness has indicated that she wishes to revise the
unequal treaty between our nations. She hopes this reformation will mark the
beginning of a new relationship. One based on trust that we earn and maintain.”
Ludwig glanced up through his glasses. “What do you think? Is it the pipe dream
of a delusional idealist?”
Balthazar pursed his lips for a while before
shrugging. “Can’t say. All I know is that the sheer audacity of the idea is
throwing me for a loop. If Her Highness is truly serious about this, then I
applaud her nerve and passion, if nothing else.”
“Who cares about your applause? Come on, fill
us in on the juicy details already!” shouted one of the members in the room.
Just as others began to join in the heckling,
an older voice from the back of the room quietly silenced them. “Now, now, keep
your knickers on, boys and girls. Let the man talk.” There sat the wiseman
Galv, smiling.
Ludwig bowed deeply toward his former tutor.
“It is a pleasure to see you again, master.”
“A pleasure all around, my dear pupil. I’m
glad to see you’re in good health,” said Galv.
“You as well, master,” answered Ludwig before
narrowing his eyes curiously at the old man’s clothing. Unlike the time in the
forest, he now wore the kind of well-tailored outfit donned by high-ranking
officials.
“Hm? Ah, this. Hah, as you can tell, I’ve
updated my wardrobe. My previous attire was, even by my standards, a tad too rustic for a headmaster.”
Ludwig let out a breath of relief at the sight
of Galv’s affable smile. The Wandering Wiseman Galv was, as one might guess
from his epithet, not known to stay in any one place for long. This had been a
source of some worry for Ludwig, so he was glad to see his fears finally put to
rest.
“That reminds me: when we were in Perujin, we
enjoyed the timely aid of Princess Arshia. Did you perhaps offer her some of
your wisdom?” asked Ludwig, probing Galv about Arshia, who was currently
teaching in the same academy as the wiseman.
Galv chuckled. “Now there’s a girl who can
think for herself. I fear you might not be giving the good princess enough
credit. She neither requested nor does she require my wisdom to discover the
truth of things.”
“I see...” said Ludwig as he walked to the
back of the room and, beckoned by his peers, took a seat at Galv’s table.
Picking up the glass of wine before him, he took a slow sip, letting the
fragrant liquid soothe his mouth and throat.
“Right, then. That should be enough small talk
for everyone to get settled,” said Galv. “Let’s hear your story now, my good
pupil. Tell us about our princess, the Great Sage of the Empire, and her
exploits in Perujin.”
“Fair enough.” Ludwig set the wine glass back
down. “The first thing that Her Highness did...was partake in the harvest of
fruits.”
He started with Mia’s rubyfruit picking
session, in which she picked to her stomach’s content.
“I see. By sharing sweat and toil with the
people, she sought to earn their trust... I heard that Perujin princesses are
the first to the fields and that they lead their farmers by example during the
harvest. Clearly, Her Highness chose to emulate their ways.”
“That’s not all. She also dined as they do.
When offered a rubyfruit, she chose to eat it on the spot.”
That elicited a gasp from another man in the
room. “You can’t be serious! Rubyfruits are delectable, yes, but horribly messy
to eat. The sticky juice gets all over your hands. It’s notorious among women
of nobility; none of them would even get within three feet of the things.”
Ludwig looked at his clueless colleague and,
as the leading Mia expert in the room, explained in a pedagogical tone, “Her
Highness is not one to be bothered by matters of superficial inconveniences
such as this.”
Mia was indeed the type of person who didn’t
mind getting her hands dirty...so long as she got to feast on delicious fruits.
In that sense, Ludwig wasn’t wrong. He wasn’t exactly right
either, but technically, he wasn’t wrong.
“Makes sense,” commented another voice. “It
was offered in gratitude for her efforts. A mark of friendship, if you will. By
laboring together, they’d accepted her as one of their own.”
“And by eating it,” continued another, “she
then demonstrated that the acceptance was mutual... This kind of exchange would
be unthinkable for the central nobility, who look down on Perujin as a vassal
state...”
The wrongness of the comments only grew in
magnitude.
“Next, we have the episode of the golden
slope,” said Ludwig. “Are any of you aware of the way in which Perujin welcomes
nobles from the empire? Master Galv, surely you are.”
“Indeed I am, and it’s a stupid one,” Galv
spat. “They cover the slope leading to the capital with a blanket of freshly
harvested wheat and have the carriages roll over it. Some brainless noble dolt
from Tearmoon probably thought of the idea long ago, and it stuck. It exists for
no other purpose than to literally tread on Perujin pride. Folly of the highest
order, truly.”
After venting his disdain for the practice, he
turned to Ludwig and said, “At the same time, it is a
form of welcome, and as a guest, she can’t afford to disregard it. Which makes
me very curious—how did Her Highness deal with the matter?”
Ludwig met his master’s inquisitive gaze with
a smug smile. Before he could speak, however, Gilbert butted in. “Oh, I know!
She got off the carriage and walked up, didn’t she?”
That got a round of nods from the room.
“Very clever,” said one of the younger
commenters. “If the carriage rolled up, it’d ruin all that hard-grown wheat,
but walking up would do minimal damage. That way, she displays appreciation for
their welcome without wasting the fruits of their labor. It’s the perfect
compromise!”
Other members of similar age all voiced their
agreement, evidently proud that they’d happened upon the correct answer.
Ludwig, however, shook his head. “No. Not the perfect compromise, at least, because that’s only half of
it. Her Highness walked up, yes, but she removed her shoes and did so
barefoot.”
“You can’t be serious! Her bare feet?!”
“No way! This is the princess we’re talking
about!”
A round of amazed gasps rolled through what would
soon be a throng of rabid Mia fans. Amidst their excited chatter, Ludwig huffed
with self-satisfaction and continued his story.
Chapter 15: The Abyssal Depth of the Great Sage of the
Empire
“And so, we come upon the climax of the
Thanksharvest Festival...whereupon Her Highness treated the audience to a
dance,” Ludwig expounded with the air of a storyteller recounting a great myth.
He then quietly closed his eyes as he recalled the scene in his mind. “It was
truly a breathtaking performance. The artistry... The symbolism... I could
almost see the bond between Tearmoon and Perujin forming before my very eyes.
I’d heard of Her Highness’s prowess at dance, but never could I have imagined
the sheer degree of her brilliance... The experience
of witnessing it in person... It bordered on the divine.”
He spoke with the kind of lyrical slur often
employed by impassioned minstrels. Or rambling drunkards. Considering the
amount of wine he’d sipped by this point, the latter might be more likely.
Despite his apparent inebriation, Galv nodded vigorously at his words.
“Indeed. It’s said that dance reveals the
depths of one’s soul. Clearly, at the bottom of Her Highness’s heart lies a
desire to see peace and prosperity for all people. The beauty of her virtue was
reflected in the beauty of her performance,” explained the wiseman, the
soberness of his tone almost comically at odds with his pupil’s intoxication.
Nobody pointed out this discrepancy. Instead,
the other members in the room all nodded solemnly, uttering remarks such as
“well said” and “indeed.”
“Yes, that’s exactly it! It was a beauty that
shone from the depths of her soul!” exclaimed Ludwig, jumping on the bandwagon
of praise with the same eagerness Mia showed for wave-riding. Her knack for
sensing momentum had perhaps rubbed off on her right hand. “And when she
finished the dance, His Majesty King Yuhal formally declared that Perujin would
forge a bond of trust with Her Highness.”
“But doesn’t that mean the Perujin king ended
up stealing all of her thunder?”
“No, the way I see it, Her Highness saw no
need to contest any credit for the feat. She deliberately gave him the floor
because she valued Perujin’s trust far more,” said Ludwig, shuddering as he recalled
the spark of hope in the eyes of the gathered audience, their cheers of joy,
his own wordless exhilaration...and most notably, the deep satisfaction he saw
on Mia’s face. It was an expression he’d remember for the rest of his life.
“But that’s not all,” he continued. “Her
Highness was after something more. Something bigger.”
“What? What more could there be?”
“We now enter the realm of inference, but it
is my suspicion that...”
Ludwig explained his theory, put together
based on a host of circumstantial evidence. He presented a grand vision of a
border-spanning mutual aid network that would supply food to deprived regions
throughout the continent. The scale and significance of this hyperbolized feat
wowed the listeners. Fueled by the childlike wonder of Galv and a roomful of
young, energized officials, the very air in the room buzzed with excitement.
“You can’t be serious! Not only Forkroad, but
even Shalloak Cornrogue? She managed to rope him into
this?”
Those who’d interacted with the Merchant King
before knew well the degree of his devotion to money. The astonishment on their
faces was clear as day when they were told of Shalloak’s metamorphosis. Never
would they have imagined him to spare even a penny for charity, let alone
dedicate himself so wholly to the task.
“It was like a great confluence of talent.
Great minds from all walks of life gathered under her banner, rallied into a
unified whole by the Bread-Cake Declaration,” said Ludwig, downing another
glass of wine—he’d lost count of how many he’d had—as he spoke. He was now
slurring so lyrically he might as well have been singing.
Faced with the blatant intoxication of his
pupil, Galv nodded vigorously once again.
“Indeed,” said Galv. “It’s said that there
exist words which will move the hearts of many. Clearly, Her Highness’s words
possess this extraordinary power.”
The sobriety of his tone called his own
sobriety into question. The other members in the room (are they even worth
mentioning at this point?) nodded in the same approving fashion.
One man went so far as to rise from his seat.
“Ludwig, this project of yours... I want in on it!”
The young officials in the room were capable,
ambitious, and wanting. Endowed with gift but deprived of purpose, the vision
presented to them by the Great Sage of the Empire (via Ludwig) of an
organization that dwarfed all prior efforts in scale and ingenuity was
infinitely captivating.
“Excellent. I was hoping you’d say that,”
replied Ludwig. “The project is in need of some Tearmoon talent, and your help
will be invaluable.”
The man’s enrollment was swiftly followed by
many others. Ludwig promised to give them documents detailing his plan in due
time.
“We also need some manpower on the
wheat-breeding front, but every expert in the field had long lost hope in the
empire and gone abroad...” said Galv with a grimace. “I’m trying to call them
back, but the best in the business is currently overseas...”
Ludwig shook his head sympathetically. “Do not
be too hard on yourself, master. We can but do our best. Even for us, it is a
constant challenge to follow Her Highness’s thought process. Its speed and
alacrity often catch us by surprise.”
That earned him a round of muttered agreement.
“I have to say though,” said a member in a
contemplative tone, “the way Her Highness thinks, it’s almost as if she sees
what’s coming... She’s so many steps ahead, it’s uncanny... Almost makes you
want to wonder if she’s truly human...”
“And which do you think is scarier?” asked
Gilbert. “If she’s not, or if she is. Personally, I’d
say the latter.”
Another man laughed at him. “What are you
talking about, man? It’d be way scarier if she had no idea what she was doing
and this was literally a crazy chain of coincidences. Reality itself would have
to be breaking down for that to happen.”
Gilbert glanced at him before shrugging. “Eh,
I guess you’re right.”
The whole room shared a laugh and a sip of
wine. Had they discovered the truth right then, they’d surely have all suffered
a fatal choking on the gulp. For their sake, may such a day never come.
“...And that’s the gist of our current plans,”
said Ludwig.
“Strengthen the base before expanding the
faction, huh? Makes sense,” said Dion.
“Time plays no favorites though. Our enemies
will grow stronger as well.”
“They will, and they sure as hell won’t wait
until we’re ripe and ready. They’re gonna strike us when and where we’re weak.”
Ludwig adjusted his glasses. “That goes
without saying. Nobles are conservative by nature. It’s been a while since that
winter day when Her Highness donned imperial purple. It’s high time for the
opposition to make a move.”
“Which means...the daughter notwithstanding,
we should assume Duke Greenmoon is against the princess-to-empress idea?”
“If Her Highness doesn’t inherit the throne,
it leaves open the possibility for a Greenmoon heir to do so. There are plenty
of ways in which our interests run counter, and very few where they align. I
can’t say for sure, but...the circumstances speak for themselves.” Ludwig
folded his arms. “Then again, it’s also possible that he’s honestly just trying
to find a good husband for his daughter. The heart of man is ever a mystery. At
times, it seems endlessly deep, only for you to later realize it was but a
shadow on the shallow floor.”
For a moment, it seemed as if he was about to
grasp the truth. He came this close to seeing the
trickery of light behind the abyssal depth of the Great Sage of the Empire.
Then, the moment passed, and he chuckled.
“Whatever the case, our job right now is to
protect Her Highness from all her enemies, be they Serpents, anti-empress
factions, or whatever else lurking beyond our knowledge. That should be the
focus of— Hm? What’s wrong?”
Ludwig looked up at Dion, who’d shot to his
feet.
“Nothing much. Just heard something. Or
someone,” he said, his hand reaching for the hilt at his waist. “And it’s
getting closer.” He stepped off the carriage, but not before shrugging and
adding, “Sounds like a small-fry though. Shame. Was hoping for some action.”
Chapter 16: Tour Guide Mia
“Hnnngh...”
Mia’s disgruntled grumbling echoed inside her
carriage. The problematic passage in the Chronicles had returned to the
forefront of her mind, and it was messing with her mood.
“My, what’s the matter, Miss Mia?”
She looked up to find a concerned Esmeralda.
Behind her were Tiona, Citrina, and Bel, all of whom shared her expression.
“Oh, don’t mind me. I just...didn’t get much
sleep last night, so I’m feeling a little drowsy.”
Mia yawned. It was a genuine yawn. Last night
had indeed been a sleepless one. After joining two of Greenmoon’s luxury
carriages to create one luscious chamber, all the girls—that’s Mia, Esmeralda,
Tiona, Bel, Citrina, and even the attendants Anne, Liora, and Nina—got together
for the mother of all girl-talks, an all-night no-holds-barred chat fest supreme.
Giggles and gasps filled the night as the conversation made its way from
Liora’s spooky forest stories to Tiona’s tales of ghost towns before Citrina
took the cake.
What was said, Mia did not know, because her
mind had refused to commit such frightening words to memory. Unlike Bel, who
munched on snacks while listening with intense fascination, Mia was
legitimately terrified. Normally, she’d latch onto Anne for comfort, but her
trusty maid had been appropriated by Nina, and the pair was chatting up a storm.
Unwilling to butt in, Mia was left to her own devices. Her own sleepless
devices.
The drowsiness was, in fact, real. The lie was
in correlation to her dour mood.
According to the book, the battle with the
caravan-pillaging bandits happened just a little north of here, and that’s
where he got killed.
Sion’s grisly fate was the cause of her gloom.
Their trip had been mostly smooth so far, but...
This broken carriage certainly wasn’t part of the
plan. Even if we leave soon, we probably won’t make it in time if we stay on
the current course. Ugh, I guess I’ll have to skip the trip to the nearby town
to look for tasty souvenirs...
Like a seasoned tour guide, the gears in her
mind spun furiously to preserve as much of the schedule as possible while
compensating for this unexpected delay. Sadly, she determined that there was no
time for her shopping detour. Just as she was about to accept this terribly
discouraging fact, there was a knock on the door of her carriage.
“Excuse me, Princess Mia. May I have a moment
of your time?”
At her bidding, the captain of Sunkland’s
escort entered. He and his squad had been sent here by Count Lampron, who’d
invited Esmeralda to this event.
Sunkland’s standing military could largely be
divided into two categories. One was the royal army, which constituted half of
its numbers. The other half was made up of private armies belonging to regional
nobility. The squad tasked with escorting Esmeralda was drawn from a private
army owned by Count Lampron.
Mia smiled politely at the bowing soldier.
“Thank you for your diligent service, Captain. The protection you and your men
offer is very much appreciated.”
The captain blinked, taken aback by the fact
she opened with gratitude instead of irritation.
“Well? Go ahead,” she prompted, head tilting
quizzically at his surprise. “I believe you wished to speak to me about
something?”
Mia, you see, had completely forgotten about
how she’d gotten herself into Esmeralda’s retinue. She’d played the “selfish
princess” card and shown up unannounced, declaring that “I, Mia Luna Tearmoon,
will be accompanying Esmeralda as her friend and that’s that!” The
this-is-the-worst-day-of-my-life look on the captain’s face at the time had
been a sight she wouldn’t forget easily. Or so she’d thought. Turns out, she forgot
it pretty easily. Flexible mind, Mia’s forte, et cetera, et cetera.
“I... Uh, I’d like to report that a merchant
caravan just passed by not far from here.”
“Huh. A merchant caravan, you say?”
“Yes. They seem to be heading toward the
capital. I am aware that you had plans to do some shopping. If it pleases you,
I can ask the merchants to wait, and you can perhaps take a look at their goods
yourself. It...will be some time before we can depart again.”
“I see. That’s not a bad idea. I was getting a
little bored here anyway.”
Mia didn’t mind where she bought her supply of
local Sunkland specialties, so long as she got them. If the caravan sufficed,
then that would be perfectly fine. Sunkland was also known for its silverwork,
so browsing the merchants’ wares should prove a fun pastime for the rest of the
girls who were also twiddling their thumbs in their respective carriages.
They could be bandits disguised as merchants, of
course...
The possibility was not lost on her, but she
wasn’t worried—she had Dion Alaia with her, after all. Within a foot of her
would stand a man who could split metal without breaking a sweat. If anyone
wanted to try swinging a sword around him, she’d wish them good luck. Because
they’d need it, and it still wouldn’t be enough. Judging by the fact that the
Sunkland captain was the one reporting to her, Dion was probably keeping an eye
on the merchants himself.
I’ll also have Ludwig with me... It literally
can’t get any safer than this.
“What do you think, Esmeralda?” she asked, not
forgetting to consult the event’s main guest for her opinion.
“I think it’s a great idea! Let’s go see what
goodies Sunkland has for sale!” Esmeralda was fully on board.
“Good. What perfect timing this is. Let’s go
take a look, then.”
What Mia did forget
was the part in the passage about Sion’s death describing what the bandits who
killed him had been attacking in the first place...
Chapter 17: Princess Mia...Talks Mushrooms!
“It is our utmost honor to have our humble
caravan graced by the presence of Your Highness, Princess Mia.”
“My, how terribly nice of you to say that,”
said a smiling Mia as she curtsied at the meekly hunched merchant. “I’m glad we
ran into pilgrimage merchants here.”
Pilgrimage merchants were traveling merchants
whose business revolved around Pilgrimage Road. Their routes spanned the
entirety of the traffic artery and took them from nation to nation. In addition
to their vital function as distributors of goods throughout the continent, they
also supplied pilgrims with necessities during their journeys, making them
well-respected by all nations.
“Would you mind telling us where you’re
currently headed?”
“No, no, not at all,” said Mia. “We are
currently heading for the capital city of Sunkland.”
“Oh, you too? What a coincidence. So are we.”
Though the man smiled at her comment, the expression appeared strained. “A good
coincidence, and we are all glad for it. There is apparently no shortage of bad
coincidences here.”
“My, what exactly do you mean?”
“We heard that bandits have been roaming in
this area, but none of us could afford to change our route significantly. We
were just in the middle of discussing what to do if we ran into some when your
soldiers arrived.”
The caravan was a modest one consisting of
three horse wagons, each belonging to one of three separate merchants. They
were not acquainted with each other and were only traveling together because
their destination happened to be the same. Needless to say, none of them had
the money to hire proper guards.
“Sunkland is known to be a pretty safe
kingdom, but no place is completely free from bandits...” said the merchant
with a sigh.
“Hm, I see...”
These bandits they’re talking about, Mia thought with pursed
lips, maybe they’re the ones who’re going to kill
Sion...
“Uh, is something the matter?”
“Huh? Oh, no, I was just thinking that since
we’ve been blessed with this good coincidence, we might as well take advantage
of it. Would you mind if we took a look at your goods?”
“By all means. We have a host of high-quality
products, so take your time browsing.”
The merchant immediately switched to a
business smile and rubbed his hands together.
“Oh, Miss Mia, look at this cloth! The quality
is excellent.”
“My, you’re right. The texture is so nice.”
Whereas Esmeralda all but squealed with glee,
Mia responded with a serene, princessly smile. Mia, you see, could be
princess-like when she wanted. Heck, she wasn’t just princess-like; she was a princess. A real, bona fide princess of the Tearmoon
Empire! All she had to do was be herself, and her natural princessness would
spill out of her like an overflowing dam.
For some reason, though, it wasn’t. Maybe the
dam was dry or something.
Hm, everyone seems to be enjoying themselves.
Good.
Tiona and Citrina were happily browsing the
goods. Bel, who trailed her friend, seemed to be having a blast too. Seeing
that her friends were all reveling in the shopping opportunity, Mia nodded
contentedly to herself before her attention was promptly drawn to a curious
item on display.
“My, these mushrooms are dried purple
shiitake, aren’t they? They grow really far from here, so I’d given up all hope
of finding them on this trip. What a pleasant surprise!”
Purple shiitake were found in the eastern
regions of Sunkland. Drying added a richness to their flavor, and they were
popular among the affluent class, making their name especially appropriate—it
described the appearance of both the mushroom and the people who consumed it.
“Oh, and these must be matsutake mushrooms!” A
green fungus elicited a second cry of delight. “I believe they produce a very
unique aroma when decocted into tea.”
“Wow, Your Highness is very well-informed.”
“Well, yes, I suppose I do know a thing or two
about mushrooms,” she said, glad to have a chance to show off the fruits of her
studying. “And I believe these are shimeji mushrooms.
They look delicious.”
She was considering taking some home with her
for Abel to try later when the merchant let out an amused chuckle. “Ha ha,
close, but no cigar on this one. These are red shimejis.
They’re poisonous.”
Mia the walking punchline struck again! She’d
been this close to poisoning her sweetheart. If Abel
had some sort of sixth sense, he’d probably have felt a chill just then.
“P-Poisonous?! What in the moons are you doing
selling poisonous mushrooms?!” she exclaimed.
Citrina promptly slid in with an explanation.
“The poison in these mushrooms can be removed
through boiling. I hear they’re eaten as a delicacy in some regions. Also,
their poison is known as shadowbane, which can be used as an antidote to
neutralize a different toxin known as lightbane. With that said, the shadowbane
of a red shimeji is very potent, so there aren’t many toxins strong enough to
require them as a counter.”
“Hey, looks like we have another mushroom expert
here. You’re right. It’s pretty rare to see these being used as antidotes these
days,” the merchant added. “They were a lot more popular in the old days when
people still used poisonous arrows for hunting. Back then, you’d sometimes poke
yourself in the finger by accident, or get an arrow’s poison in your mouth, and
you’d use this as an antidote.”
“Wow, Rina, you know so much!” Bel exclaimed.
“Not that much,”
replied Citrina, though she was clearly pleased by the compliment.
Meanwhile, Mia, having been thoroughly
upstaged...
“Huuuh... Is that so...?”
...Was, in fact, not upset! Rather, she nodded
with earnest fascination. That’s right, for Mushroom Empress Mia, anyone who
could impart new mushroom wisdom to her was a mentor worth her respect and
attention.
As expected of Rina. She
truly is a fountain of knowledge, thought Mia, her
arms crossed. “In that case, maybe I should buy some...”
Unfortunately, gaining new mushroom wisdom did
not seem to prevent her from having very bad ideas!
I mean, it’s apparently a delicacy. I can’t not try it. Plus, I have Rina with me, and she’s an expert, so I shouldn’t
have to worry about preparing it properly...
Her receptiveness to new experiences was
certainly commendable, but it was still a very bad idea.
“Rina, are you able to handle these properly?”
she asked, giving the girl a hungry look that left no doubt as to what she
meant by “handle.”
Citrina nodded, her expression serious. “Yes,
Your Highness. I believe I can.”
After purchasing a supply, Mia promptly
sauntered off to look at other goods. Acquiring a new delicacy put her in an
excellent mood, and she beamed as she browsed. Soon after, it was decided that
they’d travel together with her newly befriended merchants toward their mutual
destination.
Chapter 18: Mia the Great Sage and Her Great-Sagely
Strategizing
Oho ho, everything worked out perfectly.
Prior to this trip, Mia had actually done some
proper planning and put together a pretty intricate schedule that would place
Dion in the right place at the right time to solve her don’t-let-Sion-die
problem. To her delight, everything was—aside from a minor hiccup with the
broken carriage wheel—more or less going according to plan. The carriage’s
delay required her to cancel her en route shopping trip, but that was
effectively remedied by the accompanying merchant caravan.
Now, the final part of her plan was drawing
close.
All right... There’s one last problem to solve,
and it’s how I’m supposed to get Dion to where Sion is. I’ll need an excuse to
send him in... Maybe I can have him head off first and claim that he’s scouting
the area...
Mia’s goal was to confer upon Sion the
protection of Dion Alaia. It was definitely not to protect the prince herself.
No, that would require her to put herself in danger, which was just about the
last thing she wanted to do. Besides, even if she did go, she probably wouldn’t
be much use anyway.
Mia, you see, considered herself more of the
mastermind type.
Yes... I am the Great Sage, after all. And what
do Great Sages do? They strategize. They pull the strings from behind the
scenes and manipulate things from the shadows... Oho ho...
With everything going her way, Mia felt like
she was on the top of the world. Unfortunately, being on the top of the world
made it hard to notice more terrestrial concerns, and there was a very
significant concern that escaped her attention—what goes up must come down.
Mia was up real high right now. All that
remained was the fall.
It came with theatrical timing, for shouting
was promptly heard up ahead.
“Bandits! Bandits are attacking!”
And that spelled the end of Mia’s Great-Sagely
strategizing.
“...Huh?”
The control she felt over the situation proved
woefully short-lived.
“Bandits, eh?” Dion calmly watched the
approaching figures split up to surround Mia’s procession. “A little too
well-trained for bandits, I think...” The horseback brigands rode with the
precision of cavalrymen— No, better than calvarymen. The way they kept
formation put many trained soldiers to shame. “Surround first, ask questions
later. A good tactic done well. Bravo to the bandits.”
“Captain Dion!”
“Hey, that’s ‘Not
Captain’ to you,” he quipped at the shouting guard. The man was one of his old
subordinates. “Not in the squad anymore.”
The guard saluted his acknowledgment.
“Anyway, what’s the guard situation?” Dion
asked.
“The caravan’s guards are... Well, they’re
exactly as you’d expect. Greenmoon’s ain’t much better. Count Lampron’s men
look like they might be worth their salt, though. Should be able to keep up
with us, at least.”
“Huh. Gotcha. That should be enough to deal
with regular bandits... Too bad we’re—”
Before he got to utter “not dealing with
regular ones,” the bandits dismounted and sent their horses circling behind to
block off the means of escape.
“Should we head out and soften ’em up first?”
“Hmm, maybe, if Vanos were here... But then
again, the body count might get a little too high... Tough decision.”
“Huh. That’s rare. Honestly, I half-expected
you to be out there chopping people up by yourself already, Captain.”
Dion pointedly eyed his surprised subordinate,
who shrugged and saluted again. “Look, even I gotta use this sometimes,” he
said, tapping his head. “Think about it. Why would the princess want me here?”
To the casual eye, “dealing with situations
like this one” might seem a fine reason. “In case the wolfmaster shows up”
might also be a valid answer. But...
Our princess has a bit of an aversion to people
dying. If that’s her reason for getting me to tag along...
He recalled her masterful resolution of the
revolution in Reno without spilling a single drop of blood.
“Suppose she’s expecting the same of me this
time...and suppose there’s some connection between ol’ wolfie and these
bandits...” He arrived at a conclusion that made him shake his head. “Bloody
hell...”
“Orders, Captain? We’re ready for action.”
“Action, huh... Hey, what’s that saying again?
Something about how the best way to win is with sword undrawn? Let’s put that
saying to the test. Come on!” Dion charged out. Before the rest of the Princess
Guard could follow, he shouted at them. “The rest of you are on princess duty!
If a man with wolves shows up, gimme a holler, pronto, and keep the girl safe.
I want you all to guard her with your lives, and die
trying! Then guard her some more after!”
The guards whistled and cheered.
“Aw, yeah! That’s the captain I know!”
“Ruthless to his own! Love to see it!”
The whoops of his men like the twang of a
bowstring, Dion shot toward the bandits with the force of a loosed arrow.
Sitting high atop his mount, he drew his sword.
“Put down your weapons!” shouted one of the
bandits. “Give us your goods, and you’ll leave with your lives!”
The same bandit promptly let loose an arrow of
his own. It pierced the air with a sharp shriek. Dion, eyes locked on the
missile, grinned at the prospect of battle.
“Aw, hell if I ain’t a sucker for a good
fight. I’ll never get enough of this!”
His sword flashed from side to side. With a
shrill shiiick, two halves of a shaft fell to the
ground at his sides.
“And you, my good bandit friends, should
absolutely not put down your weapons! Keep shooting
those arrows, and you might have a chance of leaving with your lives! You’ve
got until I’m within head-lopping distance, so better hurry up!”
His provocation was met with silence.
And a deadly volley of arrows.
Chapter 19: As the Sword of the Great Sage of the Empire
“Well well well, not bad at all.”
Dion whistled at the approaching volley of
arrows. They flew as a unified whole, their aim dead-on. He nodded with satisfaction.
Granted, he was purposefully keeping his horse at a constant speed to make
himself an easier target, but that was nitpicking. These were undoubtedly
expert archers. Not a single one of their shots would even hit his horse, never
mind fly wide.
“Thanks for shooting ’em all at my face. Makes
it easier to deal with.”
He deliberately stood his ground, making no
attempt to dodge. His blade flashed again, this time drawing a trickier pattern
in even shorter time. With an accuracy that bordered on prescience, he sent all
the arrows bouncing away as if they’d hit a force field. Safe behind his shield
made of pure skill, he burst through the volley unharmed.
“Gotta give it to them, though. This kind of
accuracy while on horseback is bloody impressive. I’m willing to bet it’s
beyond even the imperial cavalry.”
Horseback archery is a supremely difficult
skill. Military archers in the Tearmoon military were either snipers, who
planted themselves on firm ground to shoot accurately over long distances, or
formation bowmen whose diminished accuracy was offset by sheer numbers.
“These guys shoot like snipers. While riding. Bandits, my ass. These are pros— Whoa!”
Dion’s left hand blurred. When it came to a
stop beside his neck, it held an arrow in its grip.
“A delayed shot. Damn, these guys aren’t just
snipers—they got tricks up their sleeves.” His eyes narrowed at the arrow tip,
which was coated with a slimy, sap-like substance. “And they use poison.
Probably fair to assume a scratch is fatal. The average soldiers would probably
have died thrice already... But this definitely makes things easier for me.”
He threw his head back and cackled. Then,
after fixing the bandits with an intimidating stare, he threw his captured
arrow up in the air.
“My name is Dion Alaia! Sword of the Great
Sage of the Empire, Her Highness Princess Mia! Spare your arrows! They’ll do
you no good! If you want my life, come trade with your own!” he roared as he
swung at the falling missile.
Three metallic streaks crossed its shaft. Four
severed pieces fell to the ground. He made a show of looking pointedly at each
of them before turning his attention back to his foes.
“Those who don’t fear meeting the same end,
come at me two— No, make it three at a time. I like taking lives, you see, but
not wasting ’em. I want you to put up a good fight for me before you croak,
y’hear?”
He glared at the bandits, acutely aware that
the mention of his name had sent a ripple of unrest through their ranks. It was
very subtle, but it didn’t escape his notice.
Looks like they’ve heard of me... I must’ve been
right about them being in cahoots with ol’ wolfie. Or... Hah, maybe I’ve gained
celebrity status in Sunkland too.
He had two reasons for revealing his identity:
The first was to discern whether the bandits were connected with the
wolfmaster. The second was to intimidate his opponents.
If I were ol’ wolfie, I’d definitely tell them to
stay the hell away from a guy called Dion Alaia. Unless they’ve got some
serious confidence in their swordplay, of course.
Either way, just hearing his name should give
them pause. Maybe even convince them to back off.
“Not that I’m afraid of crossing swords, of
course,” he muttered. “Hell, I can probably wipe the floor with them.”
As a soldier, that would be an impeccable
result. Eliminating, routing, or even forcing the opponent to retreat was a
victory for those charging into battle. As a commander, however, that was no
longer optimal, because at the conclusion of a battle, victorious soldiers were
also tired soldiers. Stamina could be recovered. Wounds healed. But death was
permanent. Maiming, likewise. Every fight took a toll of attrition, extracted
in the form of soldiers. Valuable soldiers who had both trained and been
trained with care and attention—their loss was never trivial. Therefore, for an
army, the decision to engage in battle was, by its very nature, already a
suboptimal option.
To win with sword undrawn, huh...? Bah, who’d
have thought there’d be a day when I’m thinking about this stuff. At this rate,
I really might turn into a commander. Better start working on the pot belly.
Gotta look the part, after all.
As an individual soldier, he needed to focus
only on his own prowess in combat. So long as he defeated his foes, all was
well. As the sword of the Great Sage of the Empire, however, that was no longer
sufficient.
“Anyhow, this is about as much as I can do...
If they still decide to come, then we’re definitely gonna be winning with sword
drawn. And I’m totally fine with that.”
The bandits showed no signs of retreating. Nor
attacking, for that matter. They continued to spread out and slowly surround
the caravan. Dion...didn’t blame them, actually.
“They probably figured they have an advantage
if we have to protect the carriages while we fight. Or maybe they think they’ve
got a chance of takin’ me down while I’m out here by myself. Dion Alaia’s head
would definitely be a useful trophy for them. Makes sense. The other
possibility is...their person of interest is actually in one of the other
carriages in the back...”
Whatever their reasoning, they’d still be
choosing death.
“Ol’ wolfie would’ve been long gone by now.
That guy knows when to back off. Oh, but I guess if he showed up, I’d also be
in there slicing up a storm by now. A fight with him’s way too fun to pass up.”
Just as he figured he’d wait a little longer
to see how things played out, the situation abruptly changed.
“The royal army is here!”
Someone let out a shrill cry. Heads turned at
once toward the distance, where a cloud of dust signified the presence of large
numbers of feet. The deep, steady rumble of army hooves could be heard. Soon,
the unmistakable shape of a cavalry line came into view.
The bandits were not foolhardy enough to try
facing off against the Empire’s Finest and the royal army at the same time.
Dion immediately perceived the shift in their attitude. There would be no
fighting today. Shortly after, the heads of their horses turned in unison. With
the same coordinated precision as their arrival, they swiftly departed. Dion
couldn’t help but whistle at the sight.
“What a show. Gotta hand it to them. There’s
probably no point trying to chase them... Oh?”
“Sir Dion!”
He looked in the direction of the voice to
find a boy he knew at the head of the royal army.
“Prince Sion’s personally leading the cavalry,
huh. Very gallant. Givin’ Prince Abel a run for his money. Now, the question of
the hour is... Was even this all part of the princess’s plan?” he murmured,
sheathing his blade.
Chapter 20: Princess Mia...Is Put in an Extremely Forgiving
Mood
“Bandits! Bandits are attacking!”
The second she heard the urgent cry from
outside, Mia realized she’d made a grave mistake.
Oh, moons. I messed up. I was supposed to be a
bystander, but I’ve made myself a participant.
The only thing keeping her from having a
nervous breakdown on the spot was the knowledge that she had Dion Alaia, and
the enemy did not. The Empire’s Finest, and possibly the Continent’s Scariest,
was here—and on her side to boot! As a veteran hunted-by-Dion-er, Mia knew all
too well how important the latter point was.
We should be fine. It’s just bandits. Bandits
can’t be that bad...
That was what she told herself. And it worked!
For once, she didn’t go full chicken at the first whiff of trouble.
I mean, Sion and his big head might let his guard
down around bandits and end up getting himself killed, but not me. I never let
my guard down! Oho ho! By pure coincidence, I might have charged right into the
center of a very dangerous situation, but it’s fine!
Despite her precarious position, Mia remained
supremely confident. She’d done her homework. She was fully prepared to deal
with all eventualities on this trip. Except the current one. But everything
else was going swimmingly. Not to mention she’d managed to buy some rare
delicacies, and that hadn’t even been on the itinerary. All she had to do was
patch this tiny bandit-sized hole in her plan, and she’d be good to go. It
couldn’t be that hard.
“Miss Mia...”
She heard her name whispered in a voice thick
with unease. Turning toward it, she found a nervous Esmeralda all but clinging
to Nina. It was, to be honest, quite the pitiful sight.
Sweet moons, I know she’s scared, but hugging her
maid like that? How terribly childish.
Mia glanced at Anne. Her own maid was visibly
anxious but showed no signs of losing her cool.
I know I’d never behave like
that, no matter how scared I was. I sometimes hug Anne, yes, but that’s to help
calm her down. I do it for her, never for myself, she thought, shaking her
head. Honestly, Esmeralda can be such a scaredy-cat
sometimes. No self-respecting lady should ever allow herself to be seen doing
something so embarrassing.
“It’s all right, Esmeralda,” Mia said, smiling
reassuringly. “Bandits like these won’t give my guards any trouble. It’ll be
over before you know it.” I do wonder, though... What if I
hadn’t been here? What would have happened?
The pilgrimage merchants would probably have
overtaken Esmeralda’s group and gone on ahead, where they would have been
attacked by the bandits. During that battle, Sion would have lost his life.
But wait. Esmeralda’s travel schedule changed
from before. I fixed it myself. We’re a couple of days off from the original
one...
Therefore, the bandits shouldn’t have shown up
with such perfect timing. Then again, they were still
on the same route, so...
Hm, something about this bugs me. Esmeralda’s
from one of the Four Houses, so I can see why people might go after her...
She frowned in concentration, trying to derive
the implications of this line of thought.
Was Sion somehow forced to join the
bandit-hunting expedition? Or would things have turned out differently had he
not gotten involved? I was under the impression that this whole bandit
situation is all part of a conspiracy to assassinate Sion, but maybe they’re
actually trying to get their hands on Esmeralda...
The only information in the Chronicles was
that Sion had died. There was no way to uncover the sequence of events that had
led to this result.
I get the feeling that whatever’s going on behind
the scenes, it’s pretty complicated— Huh?
A sudden weight on her chest pulled her out of
her thoughts. Esmeralda had suddenly thrown herself onto Mia.
“Wha— Esmeralda? What are you doing?”
She had to wrestle Esmeralda a little to
loosen her tight embrace. Only then did she find tears in her friend’s eyes.
This did not, however, stop Esmeralda from putting on the least-convincing
brave front in recent memory.
“M-Miss Mia, just so you know... I-If you’re
scared, it’s okay! I-I’m here for you! If anything happens, I-I-I’ll protect
you with my life. I swear on m-my honor as an Etoiline. My soldiers too. I’m
sure they’ll risk their lives for us. Probably... S-So don’t wor— Eeek!”
Esmeralda all but jumped as the carriage
creaked before settling—poorly, but by God she was trying—back into her “you
can count on me” persona. Mia could almost see the two halves of her, the big
sister and the terrified damsel, both vying for control.
What if, during the revolution, Esmeralda had
come with me? If we’d tried to run away together? Would it have felt a little
like this? wondered
Mia.
In the previous timeline, the Greenmoons had
preemptively fled overseas, dashing all hope of a paired flight by the two.
Left to her own devices, fear and doubt had been Mia’s only companions during
her ill-fated escape. Had she been accompanied by a flustered Esmeralda, it
might have actually helped calm her nerves...
Oh, well. I guess this isn’t too bad. I mean,
she’s totally invading my personal space, but I’m sure she’s pretty scared, so
I’ll forgive this offense.
The circumstances had put Mia in an extremely
forgiving mood. Not something you see every day.
While the members of Mia’s carriage were busy
engaging in their “Are you scared? Because I’m not scared” antics, the mood in
a neighboring vehicle was quite different. Tiona and Liora, the resident
weight-pullers in battle (by Mia’s measure), were checking their bows and
arrows.
“Liora, can you hit them from inside here?”
“Yes, I can... No problem.” Liora smiled and
nodded with confidence.
“Good. If it comes to it, I’ll help too. I
think I can probably land my shots, at least...”
“Aim for the body... They might be wearing
armor... But it’s easier to hit when you’re far... And if it goes through their
throat...then lucky you.”
Then, in the next carriage over, the mood was
different yet again. Its passengers were engaged in conversation of a less
martial nature.
“Wow! Are you telling me I’ll get to see
General Dion in battle?”
“Hm? You know who Dion is?” asked a puzzled
Citrina.
Bel excitedly threw her hands up in the air.
“Of course I do! He’s my hero! He did so much for me!”
“He did? Huh. Well...I’m glad for you then, I guess.”
Though not entirely convinced by Bel’s answer,
Citrina shook her head and the thought out of her mind. What Bel had said
wasn’t lining up with her prior research, but that didn’t matter. The veracity
of those reports could wait. Right now, her dear friend was about to talk about
her past, and that was far more important. Between investigating a potential
intelligence failure and enjoying conversation with her friend, Citrina chose
the latter. Her value system had completed its transformation into that of a
true noble girl!
“So, are you into strong men like him, Bel?”
“Huh? Strong men? Hmm... If I had to choose,
then yes, I suppose. I like strong, cool-looking people.”
“Fascinating. What kind of people are strong
and cool-looking, exactly? You mean like Prince Abel?”
“Ehee hee, just between the two of us, I’m
more into people like the Libra— I mean Prince Sion.”
...May the soul of Grandpa Abel rest in peace.
Chapter 21: Mia’s Trust Does Not Waver!
Some time after the initial warning of oncoming
bandits, the carriages suddenly drew to a stop. Esmeralda gulped and held her
breath. Mia, meanwhile, let hers out, figuring it was finally over.
It’s been a while since Dion charged off by
himself, after all. We’re probably done. But ugh... I’m not looking forward to
peeking outside. It must be a sea of blood out there!
After the arrow panels were lowered for their
protection, Mia and co. had been blinded to the goings-on outside. Mia’s
unwavering trust in Dion, however, convinced her that what lay outside was
undoubtedly a scene straight out of hell. The average gang of bandits couldn’t
possibly stand a chance against the one-man slaughter machine that was Dion
Alaia. It wouldn’t even have been a fight. It was pure, brutal butchery,
carried out with methodical precision. There was no doubt in her mind. Again,
Mia’s trust in Dion did not waver.
Eventually, there was a knock on the door.
“Excuse me, Your Highness.”
The voice belonged to none other than the man
himself, Dion Alaia.
Feeling extremely hesitant to remove the only
barrier between her eyes and the scene outside, Mia glanced at Nina, who sat
near the door. The maid wore the same concerned expression as Esmeralda.
Mia gave them an encouraging smile. “Don’t
worry. It’s Dion. Go ahead and let him in.”
After a moment’s hesitation, Nina opened the
carriage door. As predicted, the man who stepped in was indeed the Empire’s
Finest. Mia, who’d kept her eyes firmly planted on the wall opposite the door,
slowly inhaled, steeled her nerves, and turned her gaze toward him. As he
entered her view, she found him covered head-to-toe in...nothing. Both he and
his armor were absolutely spotless.
My, so not only did he massacre all those
bandits, he did it without letting a drop of blood touch him. How terrifyingly
impressive as always!
Mia’s trust in Dion was absolutely unshakable!
“Hello, Dion. I assume you’ve successfully dealt with the situation, then. Tell me, how many vict—er,
casualties were there?” she asked, expecting there to be a mess of carcasses
behind him. Bodies and limbs of horses and riders alike were probably splayed
across the ground. Sundered pieces of armor likely still held severed fragments
of their wearer. Whatever was out there, it would definitely haunt her dreams
for days to come.
Dion answered in the most casual tone. “Zero.
Both for us and them. A timely intervention by the Sunkland army allowed us to
avoid a battle.”
“A-An intervention? D-Don’t tell me you left
the Sunkland army to fight the bandits and pulled our own people out?” That
would be a disaster. Mia almost leapt to her feet at the thought.
“Unfortunately, we didn’t even get the chance.
The bandits just turned tail and went. I watched them go myself,” said someone
outside.
Recognizing the voice, Mia jerked her head
forward to peek behind Dion. “My... Sion...”
The boy gave her his usual composed smile.
“Moons, you’re safe. What a relief.” Just to
make sure, she quickly shuffled off the carriage and walked over.
“Ha ha ha, honestly, what did you expect?
They’re just bandits. This kind of thing happens all the time. It’s no
problem.” He said it with such nonchalance, such amusement,
as if the sheer trifling nature of the encounter made her concern comical, that
Mia almost wanted to slap him right then and there.
“Even if they are just bandits, Prince Sion,” she said, her cheeks puffed indignantly, “you
can’t be riding out to fight them yourself. Think about your position! What if
something happened to you?”
Farther behind them, Keithwood nodded so hard
he might have sprained a neck muscle.
Sion, meanwhile, simply chuckled. “Thank you
for your advice. I’ll try my best to do as you say.”
Ever the gentleman, Sion refrained from
articulating the second half of the sentence: “rather than as you do.” Still,
he couldn’t resist giving her a questioning “et tu” look.
“Now, if we’re all done judging me, I’d like
to mention that it’s a great pleasure to see you again,” said Sion, nodding at
Mia, then Esmeralda. “It’s been far too long. I’ve missed you all.”
Esmeralda all but melted at his charming
smile. “My, what a pleasant coincidence it is to see you here, Prince Sion!”
What lingering tension there had been from the
bandits evaporated immediately, replaced by fiery excitement at the appearance
of her favorite thing—handsome young men.
Moons, she’s such a simple person, Mia thought. One minute, she could be shaking in her shoes, and the next... She shook her head. Honestly, she can be such a handful sometimes. It’s almost embarrassing.
As a young lady of noble birth, she should really carry herself with more
dignity...
Just as she was about to roll her eyes at her
friend’s behavior, a tiny form burst out of a nearby carriage.
“Prince Sion! I missed you so much! Are you
okay?!” Bel dashed up to him, grinning from cheek to rosy cheek. She clearly
brimmed with the same energy as Esmeralda, which caused Mia to press a palm to
her face.
Bel, Bel, Bel... Who did you get that side of you
from?
Soon, Citrina, Tiona, and Liora joined them.
“Tiona, you too?” asked Sion, surprised by the
sizable assembly of noble girls. “What brings so many of you to Sunkland?”
“Well, uh... We’re here as a part of Miss
Esmeralda’s retinue. I believe she’s going to discuss a marriage proposal with
the eldest son of one of your Dukes.”
“The eldest son of a Duke?” Sion frowned.
“That’s odd. We only have so many eldest sons of Dukes, and all those who are
of marrying age are...well, already married.”
“My, that is odd,”
said Esmeralda, sharing his surprise. “I was told by my father that it’s a
promising young individual who might eventually claim a title even more
prestigious than Duke.”
“More prestigious than Duke? And eventually,
at that?” Sion’s frown deepened. “Would you happen to know who brought up the
idea of this marriage proposal in the first place?”
“I think it’s...Count Lampron? That’s what I
heard from father, anyway...” The way her voice faded to a mumble suggested she
hadn’t been told much of the details, which wasn’t particularly surprising.
Marriages between nobles were matters of national interest, meant to establish
bonds between notable families. There were cases in which the first time the
bride and groom met was on the day of the ceremony. With that said...
We should at least know which family the
potential groom is from... They must have told us that much, at least.
Mia eyed Esmeralda, who shuffled her feet
uncomfortably and said, “I-It’s not my fault! We’re going to turn them down
anyway, so why does it matter who they are? Besides, what if the person’s
actually a really good choice? I wouldn’t be able to turn them down if I knew
that beforehand!”
In other words, having preemptively decided to
reject the proposal outright, Esmeralda had paid no attention to what her
father had told her.
“By the way, might this Count Lampron be, you
know, someone whose statements should be taken with a grain of salt?” asked
Mia.
“No, I wouldn’t say that. The Lamprons are an
old, prestigious family. The count himself is admittedly a bit of a
self-righteous individual, but I doubt he’d abuse the honor of his house in
that fashion...” Sion folded his arms with a hmm.
“Well, this is a mystery that will solve itself in due time, so let us focus on
more pressing matters. It seems like you have no need for additional protection
right now, so I’ll take my men to pursue the bandits—”
“N-No! You can’t!” Mia blurted out before
hastily correcting herself. “Uh, I mean, we definitely need additional
protection, so you, Sion, are going to accompany us to the capital!”
She all but panicked at Sion’s mention of
leaving. If they parted ways here, he might get himself killed in another
battle with the bandits. That would defeat the purpose of this whole trip. She needed him to come with her, and if she had to twist his arm
a little, then so be it.
“Huh? But you seem—”
“Is this not your
kingdom, Sion? And am I not a guest here? Are you fine
with me, a guest from Tearmoon, being exposed to
danger?”
Sion blinked a few times at her. “I...suppose
you have a point. Fair enough. In that case, allow me to escort you to Count
Lampron’s residence in the capital.”
He flashed her a warm smile, which promptly
made the guard captain’s blood run cold. “A-A Duke’s daughter, a princess...and
now Prince Sion?”
Only a single person noticed the captain’s
paling complexion. It was Keithwood, Sion’s longtime attendant and victim, who
quietly murmured a prayer of sympathy.
Chapter 22: Love Withered
First loves are doomed to wither.
Such is the prevailing truth, and truer still
among nobles. This, therefore, is not an extraordinary story. It is not even a
rare one. It is simply a story, one among a hundred, of a blossoming love
withered by the uncaring tide of history.
The first time Tiona Rudolvon met Sion Sol
Sunkland was at Saint-Noel Academy. She’d just arrived at the academy with her
attendant, Liora, and a flock of noble girls had promptly surrounded them to
amuse themselves at their expense. Sion had then shown up and, like the fabled
knight in shining armor, rescued her from her plight. He’d offered his hand,
both material and metaphor, and she’d taken it. Led by him, they’d toured the
island. The experience had, for her, felt like nothing short of salvation.
He’d come to her aid again during the welcome
party for new students, and time and again afterward. His gallant, timely
appearances etched themselves into her heart and, perhaps, made it all but
inevitable that she’d fall for him.
Every brush of her hand against his would send
her heart aflutter. His gaze, pure like crystal, never failed to redden her
cheeks. He was, almost certainly, her first love.
Sion was a fine boy with an even finer smile.
Kind, noble, and unfailingly genuine, he was the very definition of virtuous
royalty. As a prince, he recognized the privilege and duty that was his power.
He held himself to the highest of standards, believing that he both could and
should conduct himself rightly. He became...her hero.
And in doing so, made the faults of her own nation’s nobles all the more
apparent.
Over time, a set of beliefs began to take
shape in her, which were reinforced by her later acquaintance with Rafina Orca
Belluga. As a noble, she aspired to strength, but a righteous strength. It was
an admirable pursuit, virtuous in origin, and her budding ideals were
immediately put to the test by the great famine that assailed the continent.
Rampant plague, economic collapse, popular
revolt, and ultimately...revolution.
The heralds of upheaval came for her, and she
couldn’t help but heed their call. The death of her father by the blade of
intrigue compelled her forward, and she threw herself into the tide of change,
her fear dulled by the presence of those at her side.
Sion Sol Sunkland shared her fury. He
overthrew the imperial family, rotten to its core. He purged the empire of its
prominent nobility. He toiled day and night to build a new nation that would
serve the people. What he did to Tearmoon—for
Tearmoon—was, to her, right and just.
But when? When did it all start to change?
Watching him at his side, she felt a strange...distance. The Sion she’d known
was not the Sion she knew. And she understood why. The balm of justice
ill-healed a wound of the heart. The execution of their former classmate,
Princess Mia, left his soul scarred.
Sion was strong, and he strove to be strong.
His strength forced him to hide his pain before his vassals. Perhaps even
masked it from himself. He did not—could not—admit that he was hurt. But Tiona
knew. She knew all too well.
Because he was her hero. Because she looked up
to him. Because...she’d fallen for him long, long ago.
“He’s hurt... I have to help him...”
Over and over she’d tell herself so. Never
once did she muster the courage to act. Sion was the lofty prince of the mighty
Kingdom of Sunkland. She, a relative nobody. He was out of her league. That was
a self-evident fact. Her role as a leader of the revolution and her involvement
in the political affairs of Tearmoon did notable feats, yes, but they did not
make her his match.
But when all is said, those were but excuses.
The truest, most cardinal reason for her hesitancy was her knowledge that Sion
had killed Mia for her. The assassination of Tiona’s
father had been carried out by the pro-emperor faction. To right this
injustice, he’d drawn his sword and warred, risking life and limb. That war had
left him with an injury—one he’d suffered fighting for her.
What business did she, the very cause of his wound, have trying to heal him?
How could she, even? Was she so craven, so cruel, as to seek solace by
scratching at his yet-aching scar? How many times had he seen her face, only to
remember Mia’s, bloodied and lifeless? How much of his suffering was by her
hand? How much more would she yet inflict?
Her fears weighed her down; her maturity
further bound her limbs. She was no child. Her love, hot as it was, could not
melt its icy prison of restraint. The work of rebuilding after a revolution was
also no picnic and, tied up by the unending tasks required of her, she
ultimately put it out of her mind. All of it. The fears, the heartache, the
love itself. Then, after Sion returned to his native home of Sunkland, they
grew even further apart. Though they corresponded from time to time, their
language—once so casual as to be almost intimate—grew reserved and polite.
When Tiona heard one day that Sion was to be
married to a young Sunkland lady, her heart failed to shudder. It failed
to...do anything. No sorrow. No envy. Only a slow, stifling loneliness that
pressed on her chest, and the somber but earnest hope that the girl to whom he
swore could heal that old, aching scar.
“...Ah...”
Tiona woke up. Her mind, still addled by the
haze of sleep, tried to recall the dream she had just had. It felt like an
important dream. One she mustn’t forget. She reached for it, desperately trying
to keep hold of the shapeless contents even as they leaked through her fingers
like dreams so often did. Before long, it was gone, leaving nothing but the
frustrating knowledge that something had once been there.
She sat up, muttering, “What a strange
dream...”
The details escaped her, but it had been strange. Fantastically so. That alone she still knew.
Nonetheless, her hands went to her chest, where they found a restless, aching
heart, its rhythm rapid, almost dire. What was supposed to be a relaxing siesta
ended up far less restful than she’d hoped.
“I’m probably still not used to sleeping
here...” she murmured, recalling that it had been three days since she’d
arrived at Count Lampron’s residence with Mia’s group.
She changed into a dress and left her guest room,
only to find the door to a nearby room opening as well.
“Ah, Your Highness...”
The beheaded villain of her forgotten dream,
Princess Mia Luna Tearmoon, appeared from the doorway, her face a mask of
panic.
Chapter 23: Great Detective Mia...Finds the Perp! By
Cheating!
After arriving at Count Lampron’s residence,
Mia finally had some time to herself. At last, she could peruse the Princess
Chronicles in peace.
“Not that it’s Esmeralda’s fault, but having
her around definitely makes it hard to read this properly...”
She quickly flipped to the passage about
Sion’s death, her eyes scanning the lines one by one. As expected, the details
had changed.
“Hm... Well, that’s not surprising,” she
murmured at the end of the first paragraph. “The issue is how
it changed.”
She’d successfully prevented Sion from being
pulled into a battle with the bandits. Had that solved the problem for good? Or
would Sion meet a different demise? She took a deep breath and kept reading.
Soon, the dreaded words appeared. Sion’s new
fate, as per the Chronicles, was assassination by poison.
“That does suggest the original bandit
incident was probably a targeted hit on him. I mean, I guess it’s still
possible for it to be a complete coincidence, but... Ugh, what’s even going on
here...?”
Her muttering stopped when she happened upon a
critical sentence. To her glee, this time, the book revealed the culprit’s
name!
“Yes! Oho ho, this is marvelous! The problem
is as good as solved!”
After a moment’s elation, the implications of
the revelation struck, and she sank back into thought, for the name of the
guilty individual was...Echard Sol Sunkland, meaning...
“Sunkland’s second prince, Echard... That’s
Sion’s little brother. Why would it be him of all
people...?”
It didn’t make any sense. The more she thought
about it, the more her head hurt. By and large, Mia had put in the effort to
know all the important people in nearby nations who were politically
significant to Tearmoon, from royal families to peerage. Echard, however, was a
person she knew only by name. What reasons he might have for assassinating his
brother were completely beyond her.
“This...just got a lot more complicated. It’d
be fine if the culprit were some random noble, but the second prince of
Sunkland...”
Until moments ago, Mia had been operating
under the assumption that if push came to shove, she always had her last
resort—sic Dion on the perp. She didn’t want to do it,
but it was deeply comforting to know the option was available. But it no longer
was.
“I mean, I never seriously intended on
resorting to that kind of violence, so I guess it’s not too bad... There is a
silver lining here though. The day of the assassination is the day Esmeralda’s
heading to the royal castle for the ball. I can still try to prevent it from
happening by being there in person and playing it by ear. It’ll be close but
not impossible. But it will be very, very close... Hnnngh...”
She crossed her arms and thought so hard that
vapors would be rising from her head if the room were cold enough. After a
period of intense brainwork, she toppled face-first onto the bed.
“Nope! Nope, nope, nope! Not a single idea!
What should I do? Oh moons, I wish I had some sweets right now. That’s it!
Right, I can’t think without sweets!”
Seeking thought fuel, she stepped out of her
room. Coincidentally, something much better than fuel happened to be walking
down the hallway toward her—a thought engine.
“Oh, what was I thinking? This is exactly why
I brought Ludwig with me!”
She promptly did what she did best—wholesale
delegation. After all, she’d come prepared. She had Ludwig for brains, Dion for
brawn, and Citrina for poison. It’d be a waste not to use her ample resources.
Without further ado, she beckoned Ludwig into her room.
“Prince Echard, you say?” asked a puzzled
Ludwig.
He’d barely stepped into the room before Mia
had posed him the question.
“Yes. Prince Echard. Sion’s little brother.
Have you heard any rumors about him?”
Ludwig folded his arms pensively. After a
period of silence, he shook his head. “My apologies. I’m not aware of anything
in particular that bears mention. If it’s necessary, I can certainly look into
the matter...”
“Hmm... In that case, please do.”
Unfortunately, they would not be afforded the
time to do so, for not even a second after she made her request...
“Miss Mia! Oh, Miss Mia!”
...The door flew open, and a flustered
Esmeralda burst in.
“Moons, what’s gotten into you, Esmeralda? You
look like you’ve seen a ghost!”
“A-A ghost would be easier to believe!” she
said, stammering. “I-I saw the person I’m supposed to marry, and
it’s...it’s...”
Mia waited a second and, seeing that no words
seemed to be forthcoming from Esmeralda’s open mouth, sighed and prompted her.
“Well? I’m listening. Who is it?”
“It’s... It’s... Ooooh...”
“Sweet moons, calm down. You’re Esmeralda
Greenmoon, for heaven’s sake. The daughter of a Duke. Nothing in the world
should be causing you to lose your head like this.”
“I-It’s Prince Echard! I’m supposed to marry
Prince Echard!”
“...Huh?”
Mia stared at her, their mouths now equally
wide open. It was quite the undignified expression to show in front of Ludwig,
but shock trumped propriety. Had she the mind to look, however, she’d have
realized that there were three open mouths in the room.
Ludwig reeled from the news as well; he didn’t
even notice Mia’s surprise. Only now did all the pieces in his mind fall in
place, and they’d landed with the weight of a boulder. He finally understood
what Mia had been trying to do all this time.
Esmeralda Greenmoon, daughter of one of
Tearmoon’s Four Dukes, was to be married to Echard Sol Sunkland, the second
prince of his kingdom. The one mediating the arrangement was Count Lampron,
known for his traditionally conservative beliefs... If the marriage was
realized, how would the political power map shift?
It would create an oppositional axis of power
against the alliance between Her Highness and Prince Sion, led by the House of
Greenmoon and Prince Echard.
What had already become a unified front with
Mia and the Four Houses would have the Greenmoons ripped from its sphere. The
separated house would then become a locus around which anti-empress actors
could rally. Worse yet, Duke Greenmoon had a male heir. Should Mia fail the
imperial bid, he would be in line for the throne. Then came the implications in
Sunkland. Sion and his cautious approach to expansionism would be met with a
powerful new foe in the form of a conservative coalition forming around his
brother.
No wonder Her Highness asked me to look into
Prince Echard... It all makes sense now!
Ludwig bit his lip. His revelation, though
crucial, was late.
If only I’d thought a little more about it... If
I’d just taken another look at Sunkland’s power map and domestic state... The
timing, the actors—hindsight makes it so obvious. Why else would talks
of marriage between an Etoiline and a Sunkland noble come up now of all times?
Mortified by his own oversight, Ludwig lowered
his head. “My deepest apologies, Your Highness. I should have seen this coming.
This is a terrible failure on my part.”
“A failure? I’m not sure I understand what you
mean, but...”
Mia arched an eyebrow at him, almost as if she
honestly had no idea what he was talking about. He swallowed, regret mixing
with gratitude.
Rather than castigating me for my incompetence,
she chooses to play the fool...
“I’m counting on you, Ludwig, so keep it up.”
Faced with her gentle smile, he could but
lower his head yet again.
Chapter 24: At the Edge of the Ring, Princess Mia...Takes a
Stray Arrow
“I-It’s Prince Echard! I’m supposed to marry
Prince Echard!”
“...Huh?”
Mia was dumbfounded by the admission.
H-How? What in the moons is going on?!
Before she could get her thoughts together,
Ludwig chimed in unhelpfully with, “My deepest apologies, Your Highness. I
should have seen this coming. This is a terrible failure on my part.” He even
lowered his head, as if he’d committed some grave sin. This only made things
more confusing, and Mia was overcome with the desire to scream her frustration
out loud. Miraculously, she didn’t. Teetering at the edge of the ring, she
somehow managed to brace and stay in the bout.
Wait! Not so fast! she thought, steeling her tongue against
temptation. If I say the wrong thing here, I might
send Ludwig into a negative spiral and render him useless!
A moment’s thought... Then another... And
another. Many moments passed, but she couldn’t for the life of her figure out
what Ludwig might have done wrong. So, she decided to fess up.
“A failure? I’m not sure I understand what you
mean, but...”
When in doubt, ask. After all, “assumptions”
make sots out of Mia and puns. And Mia didn’t mind puns, she didn’t want to be
a sot, so she didn’t pretend to know what was going on. That was especially
dangerous in front of Ludwig.
To her surprise, he didn’t immediately answer.
Instead, he closed his eyes, as if trying to contain some intense emotion, and
kept his head hung.
M-Moons... You have to tell me what you did
wrong, or I won’t know! Ugh, I’ve got enough on my plate already with Esmeralda
and the marriage and the assassination. I don’t need more mysteries!
Again, she fought against her inner monologue
to deliver a more poised response. Ring-wise, she’d planted one foot down and
recovered her balance.
“I’m counting on you, Ludwig, so keep it up.”
There was no point crying over spilt milk. She
didn’t know what milk he’d spilled, but it wasn’t worth him beating himself up
over it. She needed him to be alert and functional. Thus, she told him so.
Then, she turned to Esmeralda. “Now then,
could you explain to me what happened? Slowly, this time?”
“O-Of course. Okay.” Esmeralda nodded. “So,
this morning, I got a message from Count Lampron asking me to go see him.”
“Ah, yes, I do remember that.”
It made sense that the count would want to
speak to her. Mia could still remember the expression on his face when she’d
arrived at his residence with Sion’s guards and told him who she was. He looked
like he might have fainted on the spot. In that moment, Mia’s detective
instincts flared up.
“Aha, I know what’s going on here,” she murmured
to herself. “He’s scheming something that involves Esmeralda, and he doesn’t
want me to know about it...”
Considering the average reaction to the
princess of Tearmoon showing up unannounced at one’s doorstep was more or less
something faint-adjacent, the reliability of her detective instincts was
perhaps debatable.
“It said he wanted to discuss some matters
about the marriage proposal with me. So I went to turn him down in person. I
told him to his face that if he wants me to marry into Sunkland, he’d better
bring me at least a prince. And when I said that...”
Apparently, Count Lampron had all but grinned
at her answer.
“But of course,” he’d said, nodding. “You’re
absolutely right. A mere noble would hardly be a fitting match for the daughter
of one of Tearmoon’s Four Dukes. The marriage I propose is between yourself and
His Highness Prince Echard. I have already received approval from both His
Majesty and the prince himself.”
Esmeralda made a point of mimicking the smug
face he’d made then.
“I never expected them to actually
bring me a prince,” she mumbled, growing red-cheeked and fidgety.
It was clear that the thought of marrying a
prince held the same storybook sway over her as it did most girls. Now that the
stuff of fairy tales was becoming a potential reality, she was losing her cool.
Out with the big sister, in with the starstruck maiden.
“I see... If Sion becomes king, that would
make Echard something like an Archduke. In that sense, I guess you really are
being promised a title higher than Duke.”
Not only that, if something were to happen to
Sion, her potential husband might very well become king.
Taking the events in the Princess Chronicles into
consideration... Does this mean Echard did it on purpose? He offed Sion to make
himself king? Maybe that’s the motive... Or maybe Echard really doesn’t want to
get married to Esmeralda, and this is a really drastic way of protesting?
To Echard’s would-be relief, this egregiously
unflattering depiction of his character was soon discarded.
Nah, that can’t be it. Esmeralda’s related to me,
after all, and she’s got the looks to show for it. She’s an attractive young
lady. As long as she keeps her mouth shut—and her ego in check. But there’s no
way he’d know about that in advance...
“Um... Miss Mia?”
“Huh?”
Mia snapped out of her thoughts to find an
Esmeralda so meek, she appeared to be the younger one.
“What... What do you think I should do?”
Gone was her usual confidence.
“Hm... Well, if you don’t want to get married,
then I say you should just tell them no.”
“That may prove difficult,” said Ludwig,
interrupting their conversation with a grim shake of his head. “May I ask what
His Imperial Majesty’s stance is regarding this matter?”
“Huh?” Mia had kept herself inside the edge of
the ring, but now, a stray arrow came flying!
Chapter 25: No Sweets, Only Jelly
It
was only a few days ago when Mia had thought, Seriously,
Esmeralda? You didn’t even ask about what family your potential husband is
from? How scatterbrained do you have to be?
Even if she fully intended to turn down the
proposal, there was a minimum amount of due diligence to be done. Knowing the
guy’s name was definitely part of that minimum. For a young lady of noble
upbringing, such carelessness was, frankly, shameful.
Now, this boomerang of an opinion was coming
straight back at her.
“Y-You want to know what father has said?
Uh...”
For all her faults, Esmeralda was still a
proud Etoile. A marriage proposal involving her was no small matter. It was
both proper and likely that the emperor had already been consulted and given
his approval. Conversely, if the emperor was somehow in the dark, that alone
would cast a very dubious light on the whole affair. By corollary, one should
also consult the emperor before turning down such an offer.
Mia had not, in fact, consulted the emperor.
In her defense, she’d been desperately battling his stubborn insistence to come
on the trip with her, leaving her little time or mental capacity to consider
other issues.
That’s no excuse! Gah, how could I have been so
careless?
Recognizing that this was ultimately her own
mistake, she considered her options. Lying to Ludwig was a big no-no. At the
same time, she couldn’t just admit that she’d failed to even bring up the issue
with the emperor. After a brief, brain-racking silence, she went with, “I, uh,
wasn’t able to get that information out of him.”
Her answer walked right on the line between
admitting fault and denying fault. It could be interpreted as “because I didn’t
ask” but also “I asked, but I still couldn’t.” At the very least, it wasn’t an
outright lie. Feeling safe behind a wall of plausible deniability, she stole a
glance at Ludwig.
“Which could suggest His Imperial Majesty
wasn’t informed,” he murmured, arms folded in contemplation. “Or...the emperor
himself doesn’t wish to see Your Highness become empress? No, that can’t be...
He’s such a doting father. Why would he oppose his daughter? Unless...this is a
greater love. As a parent, he doesn’t want his dear daughter to walk the same
thorny path of power as he did...”
Seeing that Ludwig’s attention had been
sufficiently redirected, Mia let out a breath of relief...
“But what did you mean by ‘that may prove
difficult,’ uh, Ludwig?”
...Only for Esmeralda to pull the topic right
back to where they’d started!
My, I had no idea she knew his name. Wait, does
that mean she thinks he’s handsome enough to warrant her attention?
It was no secret that Esmeralda was very much into pretty boys. Even her usually uncontainable
ego shrank a little in their presence.
I mean, Ludwig isn’t exactly ugly, but she really
ought to be a little more selective.
Mia frowned at her friend before turning
toward Ludwig, whose expression remained grim.
“A marriage between an Etoiline and the second
prince is a matter of national import. The diplomatic significance of such a
union cannot be understated. It represents a tightening of relations between
Tearmoon and Sunkland.”
In other words, the sheer scale of the issue
rendered Esmeralda’s personal feelings and Mia’s political considerations
irrelevant.
“And, as I’m sure Your Highness is already
aware, our adversaries intend to take advantage of this. The fact that they
chose this specific moment to unveil the suitor’s identity is proof enough.
Given our circumstances, this marriage proposal is now very difficult to
dismiss,” Ludwig explained before turning to Mia. “I assume this is why you
asked me to investigate Prince Echard, is it not?”
It sure as hell wasn’t, but Mia nodded anyway.
“More or less, yes.”
Mia’s inner jellyfish astutely perceived an
oncoming wave and chose to ride it. Insomuch as jellyfish could ride, anyway.
It mostly consisted of just going with the flow.
Ludwig, unaware of the gelatinous nature of
Mia’s response, took it at face value. “Needless to say, as it currently
stands, allowing this marriage to proceed would deal a significant, if not
fatal blow to our empress faction. A crucial factor is whether Lady Esmeralda
sides with Your Highness.” He turned toward her. “I am of the opinion that we
can place our full trust in you, Lady Esmeralda.”
“Of course you can. I wouldn’t betray Miss
Mia. That’s simply not something that would ever happen!” she said, hand over
chest and chin tilted upward.
Had this been the old Esmeralda, Mia would
have taken the statement with plenty of salt, but lately, she was starting to
have some more faith in her friend. Enough to make her pause and legitimately
consider the option of putting a good deal of her eggs in Esmeralda’s basket.
“Even if I do get married,” Esmeralda
continued, “I’ll do my absolute best to influence my father and brother, but I
can’t guarantee they’ll listen.”
“In that case, we should try to stop the
marriage talks from proceeding. We will need a plan. And considering Your
Highness asked me to look into Prince Echard,” said Ludwig, turning back toward
Mia, “I assume you already have one in mind?”
“R-Really? Do you, Miss Mia?”
“Uh, well... Yes, sort of...” Swept up by the
tide of expectant gazes, Mia could only submit to her jellyfish ways.
“Excellent. In that case, I shall focus on
gathering as much information as possible on Prince Echard. In the meantime,
Your Highness can proceed with your plan as you see fit.”
Ludwig’s eyes radiated a respect bordering on
reverence, while Esmeralda’s sparkled with profound faith. Mia met each of
their gazes for a second.
“Very well. I’ll leave you to your tasks
then,” she said with a slow nod before adding, “I think I’ll go for a quick
walk...”
With that, she slipped out of the room.
Wh-What am I supposed to do now? I told them I
have a plan, but I have nothing of the sort! Augh, I need to get my thoughts in
order, but I don’t have any sweets! I need sweets!
Having burned through all her mental fuel in
the intensive conversation, she began to wearily shamble down the hall.
“Ah, Your Highness...”
A voice caused her to look up. “My... Tiona,
you’re awake. How was your nap?”
The Rudolvons generally observed a laborer’s
schedule, waking up early in the morning to head out to the fields with their
farmers, where they would oversee the farm work, at times helping out
themselves. Then, they’d go for a quick midday doze. Even after enrolling in
Saint-Noel, Tiona had continued to adhere to this schedule and take daily naps
at noon.
“It was good, thank you very much. I got
plenty of rest.”
“Hm, that’s good to hear. Oh, in that case,
would you happen to have some free time? I’m thinking of heading out to town to
refresh my mind, and I’d love it if you could come with me.”
Thus, Mia headed out with Tiona and Liora in
tow in search of that precious fuel of the noggin—sweets!
Chapter 26: Actors Assemble
The capital of the sun-blessed kingdom of
Sunkland was Sol Saliente. When viewed from afar, the city was shaped like one
massive fortress. The castle proper, Solecsudo Castle, sat atop its highest
point. Built for war, the heavily fortified structure overlooked the capital
from a central position. There was a solemn magnificence to the city’s solid
stone architecture, which was protected by a thick encircling wall that towered
over any would-be invaders.
Wow... If Tearmoon and Sunkland ever went to war,
this would be one heck of a stronghold to take down. Even with Remno’s help,
I’m not sure how we’d storm this place. Even a military amateur like Mia could see that Sol
Saliente would not fall easily. This only makes it
more important to save Sion. I need him alive for as long as possible so our
nations remain friends...
While pondering the implications of diplomatic
fallout, she noticed some unusual behavior from Tiona, who kept turning her
head from side to side like a curious tourist. She let her be, walking
alongside her atop a beautiful road of paved stone. Soon, she was gripped by a
strange feeling.
Who knew there’d be a day when I’d be walking
down the capital of Sunkland with Tiona? And doing so to save Sion’s life, to
boot.
Had it been proposed to guillotine-bound Mia,
it’d have sounded like a pipe dream of the craziest sort. A glance backward
revealed Anne and Liora chatting up a storm. One was her most loyal friend. The
other, a Lulu who’d been out for her blood. Emotions welled up in her chest as
Mia reflected on the sheer miracle that was her current reality.
I’d never have imagined such a scene would be
possible. When I’m walking with them like this, it really makes me feel like
I’ve come a long way...
“That was quite the journey, wasn’t it?” she
said with a smile, the expression distant, almost wry. Then, turning to Tiona,
she added, “I sure didn’t expect us to be attacked by bandits.”
“Yes, that was certainly an ordeal...”
“I’m sorry I keep dragging you into trouble
like this.”
“Wh-What? No! That’s not your fault at all!”
Tiona shook her head. “And even if you’d known there might be trouble, then all
that means is that you felt it was necessary to bring me along despite the
risk. In that case, I’m more than happy to be here.”
The unwavering trust in her eyes hit Mia’s
conscience like a hammer. She almost grunted out loud. “I-I see. I,
uh...suppose you’re right. We’re friends now, after all, so it should be fine
for me to ask for your help. In which case, consider this my belated request
then. Oho ho.”
They shared a chuckle, allowing Mia to
recompose her thoughts. That was, after all, what she’d set out to do in the
first place.
All right. I’m here to think, so let’s do that.
The thing is, the more I think about it, the more difficult it seems to stop
Esmeralda and Prince Echard from getting married...
Relations between Tearmoon and Sunkland were
lukewarm at best. Mia and Sion were on good terms, which certainly helped, but
that was hardly a sufficient foundation for building foreign policy. A marriage
between one of Tearmoon’s Four Houses and Prince Echard was the kind of event
that could truly cement diplomatic alliances. Like Ludwig had said, it was very
literally a matter of national import. Reversing it was going to be tough.
Huh. Speaking of Tearmoon and Sunkland, that
reminds me... If Sion and Tiona got married in the old timeline, that would
definitely keep Tearmoon safe... They seemed to understand each other pretty
well, and there was a lot of political benefit to them getting together, so I
can’t imagine anything going wrong...
Then, a thought occurred to her.
“Except...how the pair in question actually
feels. Huh.”
It was a crucial thought, one that touched on
the very core of this entire dilemma.
Frankly, knowing Esmeralda and her penchant for
cute boys, I can definitely see her taking a liking to Prince Echard...
Currently, Esmeralda was eighteen, and Prince
Echard was ten. There were eight years between them, which was a fair bit, but
hardly unheard of for noble marriages.
Yes, she’d definitely be into him. All she cares
about is looks anyway, and considering how infuriatingly good-looking Sion is,
she’d probably okay his little brother on future prospects alone.
That made Mia rather hesitant to sabotage the
marriage for political purposes alone. That left only a single
consideration—Sion’s assassination. If she could somehow keep Sion safe, she
honestly wasn’t that opposed to Esmeralda picking up a little husband.
The problem is, all this scheming against Sion
smells very Serpent-y, and even if they’re not behind this, I’m not sure if I’d
be okay letting Esmeralda marry someone who’s behind an assassination attempt.
Her walk was proving quite fruitful; the heart
of the problem was becoming clear.
“Huh. So that’s it. Basically, if the other
party in this marriage consists of decent, non-snakey people, then I don’t
actually mind if they go ahead—”
“Gosh, Mia, is that really you?”
Hearing her name, Mia turned in the voice’s
direction to find an unexpected figure.
“M-Miss Rafina? What brings you here? And is
that...?”
The person standing next to Rafina shocked her
even more.
“Abel! What in the moons are the two of you
doing in Sunkland?”
Chapter 27: Annoyingly Cute
Along the main street of Sol Saliente stood a
well-furnished inn. Its first floor had been fashioned as a restaurant,
allowing it to service even those who didn’t intend to stay the night.
“This place is one of my favorites,” said a
beaming Rafina. “The food here is simply superb. A
trip to Sol Saliente wouldn’t be complete without enjoying a meal here.”
When the middle-aged man attending them
matched her smile, Mia knew this place meant business.
“Really now... That certainly sounds
promising,” she murmured as she perused the menu. “By the way, would you happen
to have any mushroom dishes?”
A sharp glint flashed across the man’s eyes.
“Why yes. In fact, we knew Lady Rafina would be here today, so we prepared some
sautéed Belluga mushrooms.”
“Oh? How lucky of me. I didn’t think I’d get
to enjoy some Belluga mushrooms here in Sunkland.”
“We also have some pot-steamed matsutake
mushrooms. This is an eastern specialty in which the stock thoroughly extracts
the matsutake’s essence, making for a richer, more concentrated flavor.”
“My! Are you telling me you concentrated the
savoriness of mushrooms in a soup? I’ve never heard of such a thing!”
“And that’s not all...”
After extensively discussing the wonders of
mushroom cuisines, a satisfied Mia let the man go.
“Now then...” she said, turning back toward
Rafina and Abel. “What an extraordinary coincidence it is to meet you two here.
I hope you’ve both been well?”
“We certainly have, and I’m glad to see that
you’re in good spirits,” said Rafina with a giggle. “Were you invited to the
royal ball as well?”
Mia shook her head. “No, I’m here with
Esmeralda to discuss her potential marriage. She received a proposal from
Sunkland...” She trailed off as she got the feeling that something wasn’t
adding up. This royal ball Miss Rafina was invited to, it
must be the same one Esmeralda’s attending, right? In that case...
She jiggled the disparate pieces of
information in her head, trying to make them align. “Is that why you’re here
too, Abel?”
Abel shrugged. “Apparently so, though I’m
really just standing in for my brother. I happened to run into Miss Rafina’s
group on the way to the capital, so we traveled the last leg of the journey
here together.”
“Ah, so that explains why you were enjoying a
nice stroll with Miss Rafina down the streets of Sol Saliente. Hm, hm, I see.”
She shot him a pointed glare.
“What? W-Wait, hold on a minute. I think
you’re getting the wrong idea. It’s not like that.”
He hastily shook his head. And his hands. The
panicked motion caused her to burst out laughing. “Oh, relax, Abel. It was just
a joke. I couldn’t be happier to see you here.”
Mia, technically a full-grown woman, just
teased a boy for her amusement.
Abel was not amused. He quickly turned his
face away. As he did, Mia caught the slightest glimpse of a pout. “I see,” he
said sullenly. “It was a joke. That’s rather disappointing.”
“Hm? Why is it disappointing?”
“Well, I was feeling
all warm and fuzzy inside thinking you were jealous. I thought you cared. And
then I’m told it’s all a joke. Which, just so you know, really hurts. So could
you just leave me alone for a bit? Thanks.” He let out a sigh so despondent it
chilled the room air. This time, it was Mia’s turn to lose her cool.
“Uh, Abel? Come on. I didn’t mean it like
that. It was a joke, but not like, a joke, you know?
And what do you mean you thought I cared? Of course I care. What’s that got to
do with jealous—”
She stopped when Abel turned back toward her,
his face bearing the widest grin she’d ever seen. “Aaaaand now we’re even. A
joke for a joke. Couldn’t be happier to see you too.”
“...Huh?!”
Mia let out that signature gasp so often
uttered by those deeply indignant or offended.
“You know me,” he quipped. “Always a firm
believer of evening the score.”
Mia, technically a full-grown woman, was just
teased by a boy for his amusement.
“Y-You’re... You’re...so mean! Ugh, I can’t
believe you, Abel!”
She shook her fists up and down in protest.
For a child, the gesture would have been endearing. For someone of Mia’s age,
it straddled the line between annoying and cute—it was annoyingly
cute. Fortunately, the opinions of those around her seemed to skew
considerably toward the latter, and they watched her with tender expressions.
Rafina and Anne smiled at her like she were a younger sister in the midst of a
minor and lovable outburst. Abel all but doted on her. Even Tiona and Liora
found themselves disarmed by this rare display of childishness from Mia. They
let out a collective sigh so fond it warmed the room air.
Lest it be forgotten, Mia had a good
twenty-something years under her belt. No one in the room knew that, but it
still bears mentioning.
After recovering from her public flirting
session, Mia’s mind—possibly by pure chance—finally jiggled the pieces into
place and discovered the identity of that nagging feeling she’d been having.
So, Miss Rafina and Abel are both going to the
ball... Wait. Hm? Then how come I wasn’t invited?
That was the million-coin question. Why in the
world had everyone been invited except her?
How odd... I wonder why... Hm, I have no idea.
A scene from the previous timeline involving a
dance party and her uninvited, partner-less self flitted across her mind. She
quickly pushed it back out. That was a trauma she didn’t need to relive.
Chapter 28: A Terrifying Truth (Of Terror!)
After Mia and Abel’s public display of
affection concluded, the conversation returned to a more serious note.
“By the way, Mia, what was that about a
marriage proposal? And does it somehow involve our friends here?” asked Rafina,
gesturing at Tiona and Liora.
“Actually, it does,” Mia answered before
glancing around warily.
Rafina got the hint and smiled. “It’s all
right. The owner of this establishment is a trustworthy individual with a very
tight lip. We can speak freely here.”
Said owner stepped in just in time to catch
her compliment. He laughed self-consciously and placed a few dishes of food on
the table.
“I’m deeply honored by your words, Lady
Rafina. I made sure to have the whole place reserved in advance for you, so
there is no one else here today. Once I finish serving all the food, I will
also retreat to the back room so you can enjoy full privacy,” he said, clearly
accustomed to her demands.
Rafina leaned toward Mia and whispered in her
ear.
“You know, he’s actually a Belluga spy.”
“Uh, what?”
Mia almost choked on her spit. Last she
checked, the whole point of spies was to keep their identities secret. Sure,
they were allies in the fight against the Chaos Serpents, but diplomacy and
intelligence-gathering between nations existed on an entirely different level.
They might have been friends, but that did not make it okay to divulge such
information willy-nilly. Worried that this was some sort of serious espionage
faux pas, Mia was just about to question the statement’s appropriateness when
she noticed the expression on Rafina’s face—the grin of a successful prank.
“But his work doesn’t involve other nations,”
she explained. “He’s a special spy, because he’s part of our intelligence war
against the Serpents.”
Mia nodded. The Chaos Serpents were indeed an
elusive group. It made sense for each nation to deploy undercover agents to
suss them out.
“Ah, I see. In that case...”
She resolved to confide in them the details.
At first, she wasn’t quite sure how to broach the topic, but once she started
talking, the words came swiftly and naturally. After all, for all its
complexity, it was fundamentally about a relationship. Being a girl, Mia was
very much into relationship stories—both hearing and telling them. She liked
them a lot more than ghost stories, at least. With the tone of a scholar, she
described how a marriage proposal was being discussed between Esmeralda and
Sunkland’s second prince, how Count Lampron had initiated the talks, and how it
all tied into Tearmoon’s anti-empress faction.
It was, of course, ninety-nine percent
regurgitation; she was just parroting what Ludwig had said. To her credit, she
made no mention of Echard plotting Sion’s assassination. That was dangerous
information, and she had to be very careful about its disclosure.
“So, just so I know I’m understanding this
correctly, what you’re saying is that there’s a faction in Tearmoon that
opposes you, and they’re trying to collude with the anti-Sion faction in
Sunkland,” said Rafina.
Her succinct summary was actually an
impressive feat. Mia was a bit of an incompetent parrot, and she’d left out a lot of crucial details. Nevertheless, Rafina had managed to
connect the dots and grasp the whole picture.
“Yes, yes, that’s correct,” replied Mia. “By
the way, Miss Rafina... Would you happen to know what kind of person this Count
Lampron is?”
“Hm... Let me think...” Rafina pursed her
lips. “I’d say he gives me the impression of a typical old-fashioned Sunkland
noble. I’m sure you’re aware of how Sunkland royalty prizes justice and
fairness?”
“Why, yes. I’ve experienced it firsthand, in
fact.” Firstneck, to be exact. Those words would always evoke the smell of
moldy wood and rusty iron for her.
“That attitude isn’t unique to Sunkland. The
Central Orthodox Church promotes the same values as well.”
The Church viewed nobles as those who’d been
granted the power to rule by God. Kings, in turn, were those who led those
nobles and ensured peace and order in their lands. To that end, they were
granted an even greater power to rule. All this was ultimately for the purpose
of allowing the people under their protection to live safe, prosperous lives.
Whether nobility or royalty, so long as they were bestowed power, they had a
duty to wield it justly and fairly to combat evil. These maxims were, in fact,
present in the holy scriptures of the Church, and they were the basis with
which the aristocracy claimed authority over their domains and people.
“Unfortunately,” Rafina explained, “the
interpretation of those values is sometimes twisted for personal interest.
There are nobles who claim that they’re free to rule as they please since they
were granted the power to rule by God, and they even go so far as to oppress
their own people. Royalty is no exception. There are certainly cruel kings who
commit atrocities. These all need to be rectified. But that’s not all. At
times, the motive may be pure, but the skills are lacking. Rulers who do not
possess the competence to correctly govern their lands must also be punished
accordingly.”
Kings and queens, dukes and duchesses—they
were all the same in the eyes of the Lord, having been tasked with maintaining
peace and order amongst the lands. So long as their authority originated from
the scriptures, failure to abide by its principles necessitated penalties,
which would be carried out by other sovereignties under the Church’s umbrella.
“And in Sunkland’s case,” Rafina continued,
“they’ve long believed that the royal families of all other nations are
corrupt, so subjugating them—whether by diplomacy or force—is actually doing
their people a service, for it places them under the King of Sunkland’s
righteous rule. It’s quite the pervasive attitude here. Ask anyone; there’s a
good chance they’ll tell you that the shortest path to good governance is to be
ruled by a righteous king.”
This attitude was then pushed into more
extreme territory by the White Crows.
“From time to time, this logic has been used
to justify invasions of other nations, and Count Lampron has certainly employed
it before, but I’ve never associated him with hegemonic ambition. He always
seemed like the type to take Sunkland’s beliefs at face value. I think he
honestly believes he’s working for justice and the greater good.”
“Ah. That’s...inconvenient.”
An ambitious hegemonist could still be
reasoned with, as there was still room for compromise. A believer
was different, as that turned the issue from one of interest to one of morals,
making persuasion difficult, if not impossible.
“Prince Sion probably became disillusioned by
Sunkland’s methods during the incident in Reno,” said Rafina. “That has made
him more cautious about foreign interventions, but I can’t imagine Count
Lampron agreeing with that approach.”
Hmm... So basically, Sion’s getting in their way.
Maybe there’s someone else behind Prince Echard, and it’s Count Lampron? Or was
Prince Echard driven purely by his own ambition? Mia folded her arms pensively. Based on Sion’s and Miss Rafina’s depictions, Count Lampron doesn’t
seem like the kind of person to assassinate royalty. Political meddling, I
wouldn’t be surprised if he had a hand in, but not murder.
She got a whiff of obstinacy from the fellow.
The kind of obstinacy that frequently went hand in hand with incompetence.
And, I mean, it’s always possible he’s being
manipulated by the Serpents. Hm...
Now, it is time to reveal a most terrifying
truth. As a matter of fact, by this point, the person who had conducted the
most comprehensive inquiry and possessed the most extensive grasp of Sion’s
upcoming assassination was, believe it or not, Mia.
Mia was ahead of the pack! Let that sink in for a bit.
Then, after the initial impact of that
statement wears off, you’ll probably realize that literally nobody else except
the culprits even knew there was an assassination being planned, and the feat
will seem far less impressive. Regardless, it was an instance of Mia gaining
information superiority over all other actors, and that is something worth
mentioning.
Also, it’s fortunate that awareness of this
precarious situation would never befall Sion, or god forbid, Keithwood. The
former would likely be gripped by terror, while the latter might just faint on
the spot.
Chapter 29: Two Scents
“Hmm... By the way, Miss Rafina, would you
mind if I asked your opinion on the matter?” asked Mia as a question occurred
to her. “Do you agree with Count Lampron’s view? That corrupt nobles should be
removed—by force if necessary?”
Rafina tilted her head thoughtfully. She
opened her mouth to answer, then reconsidered and averted her gaze. After a
short silence, she finally spoke. “I did...once.” After another pause, she then
added, “And still do sometimes, if I’m being honest.”
S-Seriously?!
Mia’s hands shot to her head to make sure it
was still there.
For the most part, Mia thought of Rafina as a
friend. This was, in fact, a fairly recent development; it took a good deal of
time to overcome her past trauma. She was quite enjoying not having to
constantly worry about being denounced and guillotined. That relief proved
woefully short-lived.
Oh, moons... Miss Rafina’s wrath is still very
much incurable. I’d better make sure I don’t accidentally oppress anyone... The
slightest misstep could be my last...
Friends forgive each other, but there are
limits to said forgiveness. A prank or two could be laughed off, but breaking
something precious of theirs? Ruining a cake they were about to eat? Yes, some
acts simply cross the line.
In Rafina’s case, her fury was triggered by
acts of selfishness or tyranny by the nobility. Indolence tended to set her off
too. This aspect of her character was something Mia had already figured out.
Furthermore, Mia knew that there were times when she could be a little selfish.
Bossy too, and that was like tyranny-lite. As for indolence... Maybe a
teeny-weeny bit of that as well. As a result, Rafina’s admission had caused the
hairs on the back of her neck to stand on end. However...
“But... Ever since we became friends, Mia,
I’ve noticed myself changing. You too, Tiona. After getting to know you, I’ve
started seeing things in a new light.”
“...Huh?” said Tiona with a start. She hadn’t
expected the conversation to suddenly turn to her.
“During the student council election, I heard
that you forgave the people who’d harassed you. Not only forgave them, but
worked with them arm in arm to support Mia.”
“Oh, now that you mention it, I guess that did
happen...” Mia murmured, recalling the events in the classroom that day.
I’d been planning to do some sneaky stuff behind
the scenes to beat Rafina in the election, but in hindsight, am I ever glad I
didn’t end up doing that. A misstep there might have permanently ruined Miss
Rafina’s impression of me.
The thought made her shudder.
Moons... I had no idea back then, but I was
playing with fire.
Rafina smiled softly at her and continued.
“That was when I finally understood... I remember thinking, ‘Oh, so this is the
world she’s working toward. This...is what had always lain at the end of her
distant gaze.’”
Mia arched an eyebrow. She had no idea what
world she was working toward, nor what lay at the end of her gaze.
Rafina, eyes narrowed nostalgically, didn’t
notice the reaction. “Do you remember how, on the day of the new student
welcome ceremony, there was that incident during the dance party, and you came
to me afterward to ask for their forgiveness?”
“Of course. I remember it like yesterday,” Mia
answered, nodding vigorously to hide the fact that she did
remember it like yesterday—yesterday’s classwork, to be exact, which she often
had trouble recalling.
“When you showed up, I was impressed, but to
be honest, I was equally disappointed. I thought you were being too soft on
them.” Rafina shook her head. “But no more. Looking back, I now see that what
you did was something that would test my forbearance, but should it succeed,
would allow for a much more prosperous future...”
That forgiveness had led to so much. Had she
expelled the troublemakers from Saint-Noel then, none of the following events
would have happened. Instead, the expelled would have harbored a lasting
grudge, and Mia’s camp wouldn’t have won as much support as they did during the
election.
“It was as if you were making a statement to
me through your actions, Mia. And...it made me think. It still does.”
“About what?”
“About our opponents this time, and whether
dismissing them as lost causes is truly the right thing to do... Perhaps it
would be better to try persuading them to change their ways for the better...”
Mia could barely believe the words coming out
of Rafina’s mouth. They were good words, though, and she definitely wanted to hear
more.
Yes! Yes, that’s it! That’s the right attitude,
Miss Rafina!
She had to stop herself from pumping her fist
in excitement.
If Rafina was truly considering such an
approach, it would signal a fundamental shift in her way of thinking. A more
lenient Rafina meant a single misstep wouldn’t immediately put Mia on trial, or
worse, her head on the guillotine.
After all, I’m not perfect. It happens very
rarely, but I do
make the tiniest of mistakes sometimes. So it’s
very helpful for Miss Rafina to be thinking about things like this!
Seeing that she was on safer terms with Rafina
than she’d thought, Mia immediately resolved to be less strict with herself.
She was, you see, ever vigilant. Her vigilance was just in service of slacking
off.
“Also, and this really is just a gut feeling,”
added Rafina, “I suspect that being too hard on people creates openings for the
Serpents to exploit...”
“The Chaos Serpents, huh...?”
Mia thought about the future she’d heard from
Bel. In it, Rafina had become Empress Prelate and subjected the world to a
reign of terror. She’d advocated complete eradication of all foes, and her
insistence on the extreme approach had bordered on obsession. Her unbridled
wrath, though effective against the Serpents, also bore the risk of being
exploited by them in return. Meanwhile, the bodies had just kept piling up.
Gut feeling though it was, Mia felt there was
truth to Rafina’s hunch.
“Oh, bother. And here I was going to... But I
see that you’re already very busy,” said Rafina with a disappointed sigh.
“Huh? What were you going to do if I weren’t
busy?”
“Well, you see, the ball isn’t the only reason I came to Sunkland. A few days ago, I heard
some...troubling news about the Equestrian Kingdom from Malong, and I’m here to
discuss it with the king.”
“My, the Equestrian Kingdom...”
“To be completely honest, I was really hoping
you’d be able to lend me a hand, but I guess there’s nothing to be done. You’ve
already got plenty on your plate, after all.”
Hmm, is it just me, or...
Mia’s nose caught two scents. The first was
that of danger; the whole situation reeked of it. Rafina had personally made
the journey to Sunkland. That alone spoke volumes about the severity of her
concern. Whatever the issue, it was bad news.
As if Sion’s assassination and Esmeralda’s
marriage proposal weren’t problematic enough. She wasn’t about to sign herself
up for another headache. In general, Mia preferred to stay as far away from
trouble as possible.
Is this something I should avoid touching at all
costs...? Yes, this is definitely no time for curiosity. Like they say,
curiosity killed the princess.
It didn’t take long for her to conclude that
not getting involved was the best option.
We all know she’d end up getting involved
anyway—she wouldn’t be Mia otherwise. But just let her have this for now.
As for the second scent...
“It seems that our meal is on the way, so how
about we dine first and talk more later?”
It was that of food. As an earthenware pot was
placed on the table before her, she let out a gasp of glee.
“My! This must be the pot-steamed matsutake!
Aaaah... What a sublime aroma...”
And so, after enjoying a most scrumptious meal
of Rafina-endorsed dishes, Mia returned to Count Lampron’s residence, fulfilled
in both spirit and gut.
What was that? What about Esmeralda’s
impending marriage, you ask? And the truth behind Sion’s looming assassination?
Well, let’s just say that the expression “dine
first and talk more later” placed more emphasis on the former.
Chapter 30: Two Girls and a Workhorse
“Bel, would you like to head out for a walk? I
was thinking we could take a look around the city.”
Seeing that her friend had, after much whining
and grumbling, finally completed the homework Ludwig had left for her, Citrina
suggested some recreation.
The two of them were currently in Count
Lampron’s guest room. Despite the presence of Duke Yellowmoon’s daughter,
however, no one else from her house was in attendance. She didn’t even bring
any guards. This was not a sign of Yellowmoon’s fall from grace. Rather, it was
a precautionary measure by Lorenz; a conspicuous Yellowmoon presence might
attract unwanted suspicion. Mia wouldn’t mind, but others such as Esmeralda and
Tiona might not be so trusting. To this end, he’d refrained from sending any of
his own men and placed the safety of his daughter entirely in the hands of Mia
and her escort.
Which would normally entail one of Mia’s more
experienced maids being assigned to her for the trip, but Citrina had declined.
“Oh, don’t worry, Your Highness. There’s no need to make such meticulous
arrangements for Rina,” she’d said, smiling. “I’m perfectly fine on my own, so
feel free to post only the bare minimum of guards.”
Did this attitude reflect her past trauma of
being constantly monitored by Barbara? No, actually. Not at all. It was driven
by a strong desire to get certain things done on this trip. Things like...go on
a walk together! Go shopping together! Hide under the covers and chat the night
away together!
That’s right. This was Citrina’s first time
going on a trip with a friend—a genuine one sans scheming and calculation—and
she was going to enjoy the living moons out of it. Having people follow her
around would be terribly bothersome, so she made an effort to remove all
elements that could interfere with her plans.
A trip with Bel was serious business.
It followed, then, that the second she saw Bel
finish her last question, she’d suggest an outing. And Bel, being Bel, of
course said yes. This was the home of her beloved Libra King. She sure wasn’t
going to stay put inside. So, the two grinning girls made for the door. Their
departure was witnessed by a certain individual though, and said individual did
not approve of their outing!
When Count Lampron’s guard captain, Connery
Caldwell, saw the two young girls saunter out the main door of the residence,
he let out the kind of bone-weary sigh of those who’d just had
enough.
For a bit of background, this was the man who
had been in charge of the escort that had guarded Mia on her way to the
capital. Through his diligent attitude, he’d gained the count’s absolute trust.
Which, honestly, only gave him more work, but he slogged through it like the
workhorse he was. He’d just finished the nerve-wracking job of keeping a group
of super-VIPs safe on their journey to Sunkland and was winding down with some
less stressful work. Not relaxing, oh no. That would be too reasonable. Upon
arriving, he’d been tasked with looking after the guests’ needs as their
attendant. He was used to this kind of thing, though, and he’d taken it in stride.
A concerningly wobbly kneed stride, but a stride nonetheless.
Earlier, he’d almost had a heart attack when
he caught the Tearmoon princess and one of her female friends walking out the
Lampron residence with only two of her own men. That flew in the face of all
common sense. The royal capital was not a dangerous place by any means, but
this was the Tearmoon princess, for crying out loud! Sure, the chances of
something going wrong were extremely low, but come on. Two guards would
probably be enough, but in his line of work, one did not tempt fate with probablys.
He’d shot out the door at a full dash and
managed to convince her to let him arrange for two more men from Lampron’s
private army to accompany her, and that was only after promising
they’d stay out of her sight as much as possible.
“Honestly, I’m not sure why you even bother,”
Mia had said with an arched eyebrow before leaving. “I mean, I already brought
my own guards...”
The expression of sheer puzzlement on her face
had been profoundly vexing.
I bother because you’re the freaking Princess of
Tearmoon, but I guess only one of us realizes that, he muttered in his head.
And now, another pair
of young noble girls were trying to sneak out. If he had a copper for every
sigh he’d heaved on this job...
One of the girls was Citrina Etoile
Yellowmoon, the daughter of one of Tearmoon’s Four Dukes. The fact that she was
born to one of the empire’s highest-ranking nobles was seriously
stress-inducing. And then there was the girl with her, who was even more of a
problem. Who the hell was she, even?
All I know is that she’s called Miabel. What’s
the deal with this mystery girl? She’s the spitting image of Princess Mia, and
she’s got her attitude too. The girl’s walking around with a Duke’s daughter as
if she belongs there. And I’ve seen her chatting casually with the princess on
more than one occasion. Seriously, who is she?!
There was something uncanny about Miabel that
gave him the creeps. He couldn’t help but feel that if something were to happen
to her, his head would roll. Literally. That fear drove him to his feet. Being
a man of action, he swiftly acted on his hunch.
“Excuse me, Lady Citrina and Lady Miabel,”
said Connery, stopping the two girls before they could leave.
They looked at him with innocent surprise.
Considering they more or less held his life in their questionably sensible
hands, their youthful faces were, in his eyes, adorned with something that more
resembled horns than a halo.
“If I
may be so bold, could I inquire about where you are headed?” he asked with a
heavily implied “Because if it ain’t that
important, for the love of all that is holy, could the two of you young ladies
please just stay put in this nice big mansion?”
“Sure! We’re going to walk around the capital
and see all the amazing sights in this city!” answered Bel, who bobbed up and
down with excitement.
His implied message clearly did not get
through.
Yep. Definitely saw that one
coming. All right then... His stomach churned. Damn thing must be acting up again. Not that he was
surprised. It’d been acting up ever since he’d started on this job.
“Very well. In that case, allow me to
personally accompany you for your safety.”
Chapter 31: Citrina’s Happiness
If Connery could shake his past self’s hand,
he would. Thank god he’d gotten up and followed the girls out, because they
were a freaking disaster waiting to happen!
He’d come upon this realization not long after
leaving the Lampron residence, when his young charges proved themselves to be
free spirits with a serious emphasis on “free.”
“Where, if you don’t mind me asking, will you
be headed first?” he’d asked, mentally preparing a map of the city for
reference.
“Oh, I don’t know. Wherever. Hey, Bel, is
there any place you want to see?” asked Citrina as she tilted her head.
Bel shook hers. “Not really. Getting to walk
around the place where the Lib— I mean, where Prince Sion was born is more than
enough for me. Oooh, look at that.”
Without the slightest hesitation, Bel slipped
into an alleyway. It was dim and narrow, the kind of place no highborn lady
should ever be seen in.
“Lady Bel, could you please refrain from
rushing ahead by yourself?” pleaded Connery as he hurried to catch up.
Citrina, walking alongside him, gave him a
puzzled glance. “Oh? Why do you say that? We’re in the capital city of
Sunkland, so shouldn’t it be safe here?”
There was no discernible snark to the
question. Unfortunately, the innocent curiosity of the question only sharpened
its unintended edge.
Connery grunted wryly. “It pains me to admit,
but even here in the capital, there are locations I wouldn’t recommend to young
ladies such as yourselves. The first district is close to the royal castle, so
it should be fine here, but...” he explained, keeping his language vague to
avoid upsetting the girls. “A portion of the capital is an open market, freely
accessible to all traveling merchants passing through the city. There can at
times be individuals of unclear background or questionable character there.”
“Oh, my... How dreadful.” Citrina reached for
Bel’s hand and squeezed it.
Connery felt a pang of guilt at the knowledge
that he’d just scared the poor girl. He quickly shook his head. “But it’s very
very rare for anything bad to actually happen, of course. It’s a very low risk,
but a necessary one. Tighten the rules too much, and we’ll end up choking the
life out of the city.”
For someone in Connery’s position, the ideal
city would be one in which every last resident was a loyal citizen who’d sworn
allegiance to the king. However, he recognized the fact that eliminating all
foreign elements from the capital and barring all entry by outsiders would
effectively strangle commerce, resulting in an increasingly spiritless city.
There was a certain liveliness to be found in disorder. Just as soil required
manure, a dab of the dark and dubious was essential for a city. It was the bed
on which enterprise grew. The way he saw it, the open market and its slightly
questionable safety was a necessary evil.
“I see. So a kingdom needs places like that
too...” said Bel, nodding as if she’d learned something profound. Then, she
looked up at him and asked with big, wide eyes, “I want to see this open
market! Can you take us there, please?”
Again with that innocent expression! Connery
almost bashed his head against the nearby wall. Didn’t he just tell her the
place was dangerous? Clearly, nothing he said was
getting through to these girls.
“Ugh, what is it with highborns and being
insufferable? Are they all like this?” he muttered under his breath as his
restraint gave way before frustration. “This reminds me of the time Prince
Echard asked me to take him to the market... Damn kid vanished in the middle of
the trip for a bit. Found him eventually, but god, that must have shaved a few
years off my life.”
Count Lampron had spent some time with Prince
Echard as his swordsmanship mentor. As one of Lampron’s close retainers,
Connery was well-acquainted with the prince, making his brief disappearance
that much more distressing. Had it been Sion, Connery would have been prepared
for such behavior; the older prince was known for his occasional reckless
streaks. Echard, meanwhile, was supposed to be a docile child. The last thing
Connery had expected was to turn around and find him missing.
“Thank god nothing happened that time. I found
him safe and sound, and he promised not to tell the king or the count.
Otherwise, my head would be in a gutter somewhere.”
The way he stared transfixed at an actual
gutter on the ground before shaking his head with a start suggested he might
need some vacation time.
“Unfortunately,” he said after recomposing
himself, “I cannot allow that. For shopping, I can take you to the renowned San
Cereza Street, which will surely satisfy your needs.”
San Cereza Street was lined with luxurious
stores well-frequented by the local nobility. Some even required customers to
adhere to a dress code. An opulent place like that would surely appeal to the
tastes of these young noble girls—and keep them occupied enough so they
wouldn’t run off when he looked the other way. A person could only take so much
stress in one day.
“Shall we go, then?”
“Huh? But...” Bel glanced hesitantly at
Citrina.
“Shall we go, then?”
he said again, his tone making it clear that this was not a suggestion.
Finally, Citrina nodded, and they were on
their way.
Oho ho ho, I’m holding hands with Bel!
The whole time they were out, Citrina made
sure to have Bel’s hand in hers. The sensation, though simple, delighted her to
no end. It was, after all, a new experience. She’d never had a chance to hold
hands with a friend and walk around, and watching her classmates stroll arm in
arm around Saint-Noel had bred inside her a deep yearning to do the same. Now,
she finally had her chance, and it was all thanks to Mia bringing her along on
this trip. As a result, Citrina’s loyalty toward Mia had shot up by a hundred
and twenty percent.
Anyway, what was I thinking about, again? she thought, doing a bit
of mental backtracking. Oh, right. Open market and traveling
merchants. Hm...
Outwardly, she displayed her usual disarming
smile. Behind that mask, however, her mind was busy digesting the information
Connery had supplied.
A place where large numbers of unacquainted
people gather... Sounds like the perfect place for Serpents to slither around.
The fundamental strength of the Chaos Serpents
lay in their ability to hide among the populace and engage in sabotage. They
could call in brute muscle when necessary, as was the case with the wolfmaster,
but it was surely a limited resource. The vast majority of their agents did
their work incognito, and this open market was the perfect refuge.
The wall guards don’t seem all that bright
either. It can’t be that hard to slip past them...
“Shall we go, then?”
Connery’s voice pulled her out of her
thoughts, leaving her momentarily disoriented. She’d been paying the bare
minimum of attention to what he was saying, and it took some effort to figure
out what he’d meant by the question.
I vaguely remember him muttering something about
a prince vanishing... I wonder what that was about? She made a mental note, figuring she’d probe
him a little more about that later. Now, what were
we talking about again? Oh, yes, shopping. That’ll work.
She nodded. “Yes, let’s go. Shopping along San
Cereza Street sounds delightful, doesn’t it, Bel?”
It actually did. Sure, it’d give her a chance
to gather more information, but it’d also allow her to pick out clothes for Bel
to try. And Bel could do the same for her! It didn’t even matter if the clothes
looked good. What was important was that they looked together, picked together,
debated together, and laughed together—it was truly about the process. The
peaceful passing of pricelessly purposeless time. To Citrina, that was worth
more than anything else. The precise location of their shopping was, frankly,
irrelevant.
“But if we go to the open market, we might
find some rare mushrooms, right?” said Bel.
Connery frowned at this bizarre question.
“Uh... Mushrooms?”
“Yes. Miss Mia loves mushrooms, so if there
are any rare ones, I’d like to buy some for her.”
“Ah, I see,” he said, finding her follow-up
explanation more sensible. “In that case, allow me to contact the cooks back at
the residence.”
Thus, thanks to Bel, a fine dish of mushroom
cuisine was secured for dinner. What a thoughtful granddaughter.
Chapter 32: Request to Dine
By the time Mia returned to the Lampron
residence, the sun had begun to set. She entered her room, and shortly
afterward, Esmeralda and Ludwig paid her a visit.
“My, where has the time gone? I must have had
a really long talk with Miss Rafina,” Mia murmured.
Ludwig’s eyes widened. “Lady Rafina is here?”
“Yes. To attend the upcoming ball, apparently.
Abel’s with her too.”
“I see... Hm... With Lady Rafina...” A glint danced
off his glasses, revealing a sharp gaze behind them. Mia jerked back a little.
It was a little too sharp for comfort.
Uh-oh. I haven’t given any thought to Esmeralda’s
marriage proposal or Sion’s assassination. I spent all day eating and chatting
with Miss Rafina! Okay, I need an excuse. Think, Mia, think...
After a concentrated moment of consideration,
she came up with one.
“And, before you ask, I did manage to gain
some information.”
She’d received a verbal depiction of Count
Lampron’s character. That had to be worth something. Also, she’d learned how to
make pot-steamed food using traditional earthenware. That was definitely a
culinary technique unheard of in Tearmoon.
Those pot-steamed mushrooms were truly something!
I’m so glad I learned how to make those!
If she explained the process to the head chef
and had him research the technique some more, she might legitimately contribute
to Tearmoon’s food culture. That would be time well spent.
That’s right, I didn’t just eat and come back! I
had a job to do, and I got it done!
After convincing herself that she hadn’t just
spent a whole day slacking off, she glanced at Ludwig.
“Ugh...” She groaned. The glance was a
mistake.
“I see. A step ahead as always. Your Highness
never fails to impress.” The unqualified admiration in his gaze stung her
conscience, and she had to look away. “I fully agree with your approach,” he
continued. “If we wish to regain initiative in this engagement, then we need
more information. To that end, I have—and I do apologize for the short
notice—arranged for dinner with King Abram this evening.”
“...Huh?” This sudden turn of events left Mia
stunned. She was not ready to see the king.
Before she could even get a word of protest in
though, Ludwig spoke again. “I believe it is crucial to probe the Sunkland king
regarding his opinion of this marriage proposal.”
It certainly was crucial!
There was literally nothing she could say to refute that!
“...I-I see. So, you decided to go ahead and
arrange this dinner?”
“Yes. I contacted Prince Sion through
Keithwood. The invitation also extends to Lady Esmeralda as Prince Echard’s
potential consort. Miss Tiona, as Prince Sion’s classmate, will be allowed to
attend as well.”
“My, Tiona too? Hm...” Mia glanced at
Esmeralda.
“O-Oh, moons... Wh-What should I do, Miss Mia?
My heart... It’s not ready for this...”
Mia would not find any reassurance in her
friend, who looked even more flustered than her.
I’d feel a lot better if Ludwig and Anne came
with me...but I doubt attendants will be allowed at a dinner session with the
king. That means at worst, I might have to square off against him with
Esmeralda as my only ally.
That wasn’t the most comforting thought. As a
firm believer of the idea that “strength in numbers” described the best
approach to tackling every problem in existence, she wanted as many people on
her side as possible.
Then again, they’re the ones who brought this
proposal up in the first place. They’re also letting me bring Tiona, which I’ll
gladly do. Given that...
“I-I didn’t think I’d be meeting with him so
quickly. Oh, my heart...” stammered Esmeralda.
Mia studied her increasingly nervous friend,
somewhat surprised by the intensity of her reaction. As a rule, Esmeralda was
used to getting her way, rules be damned. She could be speaking to a foreign
king, and she’d still be scoffing like usual. The girl had nerve.
Well, that was how Mia saw her, at least.
The current Esmeralda, however, seemed to have
lost all her edge.
I bet it’s because the person she’s seeing might
become her father-in-law. Oh, come on, Esmeralda, get a grip!
With an assertive hmph,
Mia proceeded to give her friend a pep talk.
“All right, listen here, Esmeralda. Who are
you? You are a proud Etoile, daughter of Lord Greenmoon, one of Tearmoon’s
renowned Four Dukes, and you should conduct yourself accordingly. Your mere
presence should strike awe into people, like... Like the Emerald Star! That
yacht’s a sight to behold, right? Be like the Emerald Star!”
“The...Emerald Star?”
Mia nodded, feeling particularly proud of her
analogy.
Let’s just ignore the fact that Mia had been
decidedly unimpressed when she’d first laid eyes upon the vessel.
“I-I will, Miss Mia... I’ll be like the
Emerald Star!”
It seemed to work, though, judging by how it
moved Esmeralda to tears.
Ugh, I wish someone would give me a pep talk now... After seeing Esmeralda off, Mia quickly had Anne
help her change. Then, she sighed. This whole thing
is easier said than done...
Just then, there was a knock on the door.
“Excuse us, Miss Mia.”
“We’re back, Your Highness.”
The door opened to reveal Bel and Citrina.
“My, the two of you were out as well?”
Mia
acknowledged them before quickly returning to her own thoughts. I wonder what kind of person Sion’s father is... I mean, he’s Sion’s father, so I’ve probably got my work cut out. I really hope I can get
some useful information out of him...
The king wasn’t even the worst of her
troubles.
“It’s Prince Echard that’s the real problem,
isn’t it...” she murmured.
Citrina’s eyes sprung open in shock.
“You...already know, then. Wow...” she said,
visibly impressed. “How should I proceed?”
Mia frowned. She had no idea what Citrina was
talking about, but she’d also been so focused on her own thoughts that she
might have missed something Citrina had said. Not wanting to appear
inattentive, she decided to go with “Hm, let’s say... I’ll leave it in your
hands,” figuring it was probably along the lines of taking Bel to that market
something or other.
She then leaned over and added in a whisper, “Honestly,
our dear friend’s been looking a little bored lately, so go ahead and do your
thing together if you want. I don’t particularly mind.”
Citrina’s skills were certainly invaluable,
but it was later that they’d be needed, and even then more as a precaution than
anything else. In the meantime, she figured she might as well keep Bel amused.
Citrina, for her part, nodded soberly.
“Understood. It shall be done, or I’ll die
trying...”
“Uh... Okay. That’s...a little intense, but
sure.”
Mia looked at her somewhat uncomfortably,
wondering what it was about Bel that got this girl so infatuated. She was going
to take Bel out for some fun, or die trying? Weird.
Chapter 33: Aurelia Sirupis
“Wow... So this is Sunkland’s royal castle...”
whispered an awestruck Anne as she gazed up the towering ramparts.
Its imposing architecture of solid stone
looked entirely impervious to attack, but it didn’t stretch for very far. Even
with Mia’s short strides, she could walk from end to end in under ten minutes.
This reflected a philosophy of pragmatism that was almost the reverse of the
Whitemoon Palace. The royal castle’s walls were not built for visual
impact—they were erected as a military structure to repel invaders, and that
purpose defined every aspect of their construction. They didn’t need to be
long. They simply needed to be long enough.
“Hm, yes. That’s Solecsudo Castle. It’s my
first time seeing it too, actually,” said Mia.
This was, in fact, her first time—previous
life included—setting foot in Sunkland, and she was equally impressed by the
sight of the royal castle.
Even from afar, it looks pretty majestic. I
almost feel proud to be laying eyes on it, and I’m not even from Sunkland.
The presumptuous attitude of Sunkland nobles
started to make more sense to her. She could see how the presence of such a
magnificent structure would make people proud of their kingdom. Once the pride
was there, it was only a small step to start believing that everyone would be
better off basking in its glory.
“Hm?” Mia arched an eyebrow at Anne, who was
still staring at the keep. “Is something the matter?”
“Oh, no... It’s just that... Hearing that it’s
your first time here too makes me feel like this is a very special experience.
Just getting to work in the Whitemoon Palace of the mighty Tearmoon Empire is
already a miracle, and I’m also attending Saint-Noel Academy... Then you took
me to the castle in Perujin, and now Sunkland too...”
Anne smiled, clearly moved by the thought. Mia
nodded in agreement. “Yes, these probably aren’t the kinds of experiences
someone living a normal life would have.”
In the previous timeline, Anne had probably
spent her whole life in the Tearmoon capital. Maybe she’d have gone to a few
places, but they’d all certainly be within the empire’s borders. Now, she was
walking around in Sunkland. She’d come a long way from home. A long way, Mia
realized, from her family.
“Hey, um, Anne?” she said, suddenly worried.
“Are you, uh...okay?”
“What do you mean, milady?” Anne asked,
puzzled.
“It’s been a while since you’ve seen your
family, hasn’t it? I know I asked you to come with me to Saint-Noel, but you
don’t have to follow me everywhere else. I’d appreciate it if you stayed with
me when I’m in Belluga, but as for the rest of the time, if you get homesick,
you’re free to leave—”
“No, milady. Thank you, but that won’t ever
happen.” Anne firmly shook her head. “Traveling with you is an honor, milady.
I’m always proud to be by your side. Besides, I get to tell Elise all sorts of
stories whenever I see her, and she loves it.” She grinned. “So don’t worry.
Wherever you go, I’ll be there with you. Always. Even if you tell me not to.”
“Anne...” Mia let out a soft, resigned giggle.
“Ah, of course you would. Because you’re Anne. And I wouldn’t have it any other
way.” She looked up at Solecsudo Castle. “All right, let’s see what’s in this
place!”
Head held high, she strode proudly into the
castle with Esmeralda and Tiona in tow. Sadly, her confidence would prove
short-lived, ending not with a bang but a whimper as she came face to face with
the king.
“Your Majesty, it is a pleasure to meet you. I
am Mia Luna Tearmoon, princess of the Tearmoon Empire.”
She and her friends greeted the king in his
audience chamber. Each of them, Mia included, performed a much deeper curtsy
than usual. Sunkland was Tearmoon’s equal, and anything less than the highest
degree of courtesy would be disrespectful. This was no problem for Mia, though.
She was used to such occasions and promptly put on her flawless princessly
smile.
“The pleasure is mutual, princess of Tearmoon.
It is a long journey you have made, and I am grateful for it.” The king of
Sunkland, Abram Sol Sunkland, smiled.
Mia studied him. He seemed about the same age
as her father, and he had a fine mustache that enhanced the intellectual aura of
his gaze. His smile, though gentle at a glance, was subtly intimidating, and
she felt an urge to shuffle uncomfortably.
S-So this is the king of Sunkland... He’s
certainly got the aura. Father isn’t even half as daunting as him...
The very air around him somehow felt purer,
more regal. Breathing it in caused Mia’s head to spin.
Who could blame her? After all, Mia was part
jellyfish. And not just any jellyfish, but a rare breed that lives in sugar
water. She was an aurelia sirupis. Aurelia
sirupis could not survive in freshwater. Or any water, seeing as they
don’t actually exist, but regardless...
Gah, get it together! This is no time to be
shriveling up!
She smiled back, trying to channel the friend
she had just had lunch with—the Holy Lady, Rafina. Rafina, she figured,
wouldn’t be daunted by this king. Rafina would remain her dignified self. Mia
did her best impression.
“Please give my regards to your son, Prince
Sion. He has been a most wonderful friend.”
“I shall. Your superior wisdom seems, I’ve
noticed, to have influenced him in a positive fashion, so I have been curious
about your person. I am glad that the chance to meet you has come so soon.”
King Abram then turned to Tiona. “You must be Tiona Rudolvon. On behalf of my
son, thank you for your work in Saint-Noel Academy’s student council.”
“Y-You’re most welcome, Your Majesty.” Caught
completely off guard by his sudden mention of her, that was all Tiona could
muster as a reply before bowing her head.
The king’s gaze shifted again, moving past Mia
to settle on Esmeralda.
“And you, I presume, are Lady Esmeralda Etoile
Greenmoon?”
“Y-Yes!” Esmeralda almost jumped.
Mia, on the contrary, felt a cool composure
wash over her. Seeing that her friend was a bundle of nerves actually calmed
her own. Well then... I see that I’m the one who’ll have to
do all the heavy lifting here!
Then, the heat came. Mia started to get fired
up. She was going to handle this situation. Nervous
Esmeralda was just as much of a handful as normal Esmeralda, but that only
poured oil on the growing flame that was Mia’s motivation.
Chapter 34: A Changing Heart
“I-It’s an absolute pleasure to m-make your acquaintance,
Y-Your Majesty.”
Esmeralda’s arms fell from her chest to her
hips. Then, she lowered them farther. Finally, she pinched. With shaky fingers
and the disjointed motion of a rickety old puppet, she performed a curtsy so
nervous her whole skirt shook with her.
“I-I am the eldest daughter of House
Greenmoon, and m-my name is Esmedal—”
This culminated in a magnificent flop in which
she fumbled her own name. There was a brief silence, after which her head
swiveled toward Mia. Tears welled in her eyes.
Oh, Esmeralda... Mia shook her head and sighed like a
disappointed parent. What a way to stumble on the
big stage. Messing up your own name? Unbelievable. Let me show her how it’s
done.
With utter aplomb, she opened her mouth.
“Allow me, Your Majesty. She is a relative of
mine. An Etoiline, born to one of our empire’s Four Dukes. Her name is
Esmeralalda—”
And fumbled too!
“—Etoile Greenmoon!”
But through sheer gall, she forced her way
through to the end of her sentence and smiled as if nothing had happened! It
was, frankly, impressive. Mia, after all, was no spring chicken when it came to
botching her lines. She was a seasoned botcher, a sinewy old bird who’d seen
some droppings. A mere blunder of the tongue would not shake her.
“On behalf of my friend, I’d like to apologize
for her behavior. She is still shaken by this sudden news of a marriage
proposal, and I must ask for your understanding.”
The king chuckled. “Be at ease. We are
gathered today for a private event.” He nodded at Esmeralda. “There is no need
for excessive propriety, Lady Esmeralda. This is but a simple meeting to
acquaint ourselves. I would ask you to relax and enjoy a good meal.”
King Abram smiled candidly, and the
aggressively righteous aura about him diminished. Mia almost reflexively took a
deep breath. It was as if he’d removed a piece of the thick shell that was his
royal persona to reveal a glimpse of the human inside.
My, I didn’t think he had it
in him to smile like that. Seeing that he had a
less intimidating side, Mia felt some of the tension in her muscles dissolve.
The same could not be said of Esmeralda. “A-As
you command, Your Majesty. I-I will do exactly that.”
She was as nervous as ever, so much so that it
was making Mia uncomfortable.
Moons, Esmeralda. How are you such a wimp? Come
on! Show some spine!
King Abram chuckled. “In any case, let us get
on with the meal. We can talk as we dine.”
With a look, he signaled the middle-aged
butler beside him, who promptly stepped forward and gestured for the girls to
follow. “This way, please.”
They moved from the audience chamber to a
nearby room. It was moderate in size—about half as large as a Saint-Noel
classroom—and could fit at best a dozen people or so. The table at the center
of the room was, interestingly, a round one. During formal dining sessions, it
was custom to seat oneself in accordance with one’s social standing. A round
table made such distinction impossible. Just as the group stalled, unsure of
where to sit, a new voice greeted them.
“Welcome, everyone.”
It was soft and serene like autumn sunshine.
The voice belonged to a plump, smiling woman with gray hair whose facial
creases suggested she often wore her gentle expression. Soothed further, Mia
felt the last remnants of her tension fade.
“Hello. It’s nice to meet you. I am Mia Luna
Tearmoon, princess of the Tearmoon Empire.”
Next, Esmeralda and Tiona each greeted the
lady, who listened and smiled at them in turn before introducing herself as the
queen consort.
“Thank you all for taking such good care of
Sion,” she said, voice now imbued with the warmth of spring.
King Abram then stepped in with Sion and his
brother. The younger prince had the same silver hair, neatly trimmed and
beautifully brilliant. A long palisade of forelocks fell over his eyes, which
peeked through the strands with timid caution.
“I think everyone here knows Sion well
enough,” said the king as he looked at Echard. “Come on, then. Go ahead and
introduce yourself.”
The young boy did as asked, stepping forward
with a graceful bow. “Hello. My name is Echard Sol Sunkland.”
He then fidgeted a little before managing an
endearingly strained smile. It almost won Mia over right then and there.
My, he’s so cute... Wait, no! She caught herself at the
last moment. He’s the one behind Sion’s
assassination. I can’t let my guard down!
Forcing wariness back into her gaze, she
studied him. She stared at his adorable haircut, then his adorable eyes, then
the adorably puzzled tilt of his head...
Nope! He was too cute for wariness.
I mean, now that I think about it, there’s no way
a cute kid like him could be plotting an assassination. Chances are, he’s being
manipulated by that Lampron person...
“Ah, by the way, Princess Mia,” said the king.
“I heard from Count Lampron that you have a taste for mushroom cuisines, so I
had one prepared today. It is only one dish, but I do hope you will find it to
your liking.”
“Have you! My, I can barely wait!”
You know what? Count Lampron sounds like a fine
fellow. He probably has nothing to do with the incident. It’d be a terrible disservice
to think of him as a culprit!
Mia had an immediate change of heart. She
changed her heart so frequently that she should consider a career in cardiac
surgery, honestly.
Chapter 35: Citrina’s Pastime
“My, the two of you were out as well?”
Bel grinned and nodded at Mia’s question.
“Yes, and we learned about a really interesting place. It’s called an open
market.”
Citrina listened to Bel report on their
outing. As she did, she pondered how to make use of the information she’d
gained.
A market that’s freely accessible to all nearby
merchants... There’s probably a lot of sketchy traffic in and out, and Prince
Echard vanished in a place like that. Briefly, but he did vanish. That
definitely raises some questions...
If he’d simply gotten lost, it’d be fine, but
what if he’d had an encounter with the Chaos Serpents? Feeling that the risk
was too great to ignore, Citrina decided to ask Mia how to proceed. She waited
until Bel finished her story and began strolling around the room before
whispering into Mia’s ear.
“Your Highness, about the open market, I was
wondering how—”
“It’s Prince Echard that’s the real problem,
isn’t it...?”
Mia’s mumbled response took the air out of
Citrina’s lungs. She stared in shock, feeling like her mind had just been read.
She...already knows?
True, it’d been a number of days since they’d
arrived at the capital. That was enough time for her to have gathered this
information of her own. Still...
For someone who made me swear not to tell anyone
else, Connery sure isn’t keeping a very tight lip.
Citrina recalled the face of the soldier who’d
followed them on their trip. He looked like the kind of person whose hard work
only earned him harder work. She felt a pang of worry for the man.
For most of her life, Citrina had kept all her
relationships in emotional limbo. She could at any moment receive orders to
kill a friend, so she’d made an effort to ignore any affection she’d felt for
the people around her. Mia, however, wasn’t going to ask her to assassinate
anyone. She’d said it loud and clear. With this restraint removed, Citrina
naturally began to nurture friendships, returning kindness and concern to those
who’d given the same to her. Connery, in particular, had helped her secure lots
of frolic-with-Bel time. Frankly, it was harder to ask her not to be fond of
him.
In any event...
“How should I proceed?”
Citrina unthinkingly asked Mia for
instructions. That was how she’d always lived; ask for instructions and then
carry them out. She’d done so for Barbara, and she’d done so for her father.
Now, it was Mia giving the orders. That’s all. Nothing else had changed. Most
importantly, however reformed, she was still an ex-Chaos Serpent. She’d even
tried to kill Mia. What say could she possibly have over her actions? All she
should and could do was to obey Mia’s orders.
That’s what she’d thought, at least.
“Hm, let’s say... I’ll leave it in your
hands.”
Defying all her expectations, Mia instead
ceded the decision. Mia was trusting her judgment. Trusting her with
Serpent-related information. It was up to her.
“Understood. It shall be done, or I’ll die
trying...”
With emotions surging, Citrina met Mia’s
trusting gaze, felt the weight of duty on her shoulders, and bore it gladly.
Citrina snuck out of the Lampron residence,
dodging the patrols using the information she’d gotten out of Connery.
Connery definitely needs a tighter lip. Before I
leave, I should probably give him a lecture about keeping his mouth shut.
She walked down an alleyway with the certainty
of a local. During her trip around town with Bel during the day, she’d already
familiarized herself with the city’s layout. Once she’d put some distance
between herself and the residence, she lit a handheld lantern. An amber glow
pushed back the surrounding night.
“All right... Let’s do this.”
She made her way toward the open market,
slipping from alleyway to gloomy alleyway. For all its hustle and bustle, the
streets of the royal capital were deserted at night. A few watchmen evaded, and
she was already out of District One, which neighbored the royal castle. As she
pressed on, the towering structure sank into the background, and the scent of
the air began to change. It smelled faintly of perfume. At times, she caught a
stronger, more intoxicating whiff: hard liquor, the kind used to ply reluctant
mouths and dejected minds. The night here reeked of danger. It was no place for
a noble girl like her.
Unlike the man who appeared from the shadows.
He very much looked like he belonged here.
“Hey now, what do we have here? How’d a little
noble wander into this part of town?”
He walked into the glow of her lantern,
revealing a badly scarred cheek and the grin of a ruffian. She stole a quick
glance backwards. A second man had appeared behind her too.
“Heh heh heh, you shouldn’t be out alone. It’s
dangerous here, you see? How ’bout you let me and my friend keep you safe from
the baddies around town?”
He studied her wolfishly. Judging by how he
picked her out as a noble with one glance...
A kidnapper on the hunt, or maybe a human
trafficker... Connery was right. This area’s a rough neighborhood.
Citrina made these observations without any
hint of alarm. She wasn’t much of a fighter, nor did she possess any more
acrobatic talent than the average noble girl her age. Whatever assassination
expertise she possessed, it wouldn’t help her in this situation. The
circumstantial evidence suggested that she should be
terrified. But if that was the case, then why wasn’t she?
That, you see, isn’t even the right question.
The first thing one should consider is why she was even carrying a lantern to
begin with. Citrina was well aware that when moving in the dark, the weak
should never carry a light. It would reveal the carrier, functioning as a lure
for potential predators. Whatever bonus vision the lantern might grant would be
useless even in a brawl. If there was sufficient moonlight to see, no lanterns
should be used. So why did she hold one?
Well, she was, in fact, trying to lure in a
predator. And not just any predator. One who probably knew this open market
like the back of his hand, and could convince men like these two to spend the
rest of the night unconscious in a ditch.
That’s right. Mia had said so herself. Their
dear friend had been looking a little bored lately, so she didn’t mind if
Citrina went ahead and did her thing together with said friend. Furthermore,
this friend conveniently hadn’t accompanied Mia to dine with the Sunkland king.
If this were a puzzle, the clues would frankly be a little too obvious.
She’d done so on purpose. To keep her safe
from danger. Mia had left Citrina her most powerful sword.
So, Citrina did nothing. She simply waited,
trusting that the man’s boredom would not allow him to sit idly by while the
Yellowmoon girl snuck off in a most suspicious manner.
I know his kind. Ask them for help, and they
refuse. Tell them to stay away, and they’ll hound you all day long.
She had no evidence, no guarantee that she was
right. She’d come here on conviction alone. Conviction, and a little bit of
consideration—she’d brought a lantern to light his way.
“It’s not very polite to keep a lady waiting,
you know?” she declared into the empty gloom. “Or is this pair not even worth
your time?”
“The hell are you going on about, girl?”
“I really hope it’s not because you’re some
sort of sick person who’s into watching girls like Rina get scared and cry.”
“Who the hell are you talking— Augh!” The man
let out a pained groan and fell over.
“Well, well, well... Looks like I played right
into your bloody hands. That really rubs me the wrong
way. Also, just for the record, I saw plenty of your tears at the Yellowmoon
manor, and gotta say, didn’t feel much. If I’m gonna make somebody cry, I’d
much rather it be the princess. Watching her lose her head sounds way more
fun.”
From the darkness where the ruffian once stood
appeared the man Citrina had been waiting for. The Empire’s Finest, Dion Alaia,
had arrived on the scene.
“Is that so? I’m sorry I couldn’t satisfy your
taste. Could I make it up to you with some conversation? I’m sure it’ll at
least keep your boredom at bay. I’ve been meaning to have a nice long chat with
you.” Citrina gave him one of her sweetest smiles with a cherry-like head-tilt
on top. “You see, I noticed that you and Bel seem rather acquainted with each
other, and I was wondering... What’s the big idea, hm?”
Chapter 36: With a Heart Ninety-Seven Percent Pure
“On that note, Princess Mia... Belated though
it may be, I would like to offer my formal apologies for the incident in the
Kingdom of Remno. It is my understanding that my kingdom caused you a great
deal of trouble.” King Abram lowered his head.
Mia quietly shook hers in response. “You owe
me no apology, Your Majesty. The incident has passed, and any issues we had
with Remno have been resolved. Prince Sion has already apologized to me as
well. It is water under the bridge; let us not continue chasing it.”
“But...”
“I suffered no personal inconvenience, and
Prince Sion’s help was indispensable in the incident’s resolution. There truly
is no need for an apology.”
Her gracious attitude drew an affected sigh
out of Abram.
“Very well. I’ve heard from Sion that Princess
Mia of Tearmoon has a big heart. I see now that he is right.”
The queen consort seemed to share his
admiration, and they both nodded approvingly. Needless to say, their evaluation
was slightly off the mark. It wasn’t Mia’s heart that was big; it was her gut.
Said gut was also very empty right now, and apologies weren’t going to fill it
up. Her interest lay not in fault but food! Of the mushroom variety,
preferably!
“Enough with the official matters, then. Let
us dine. Due to the abrupt nature of this gathering, we were only able to
prepare some simple dishes. I do hope they will be to your liking.”
At the king’s signal, dinner was served. It
didn’t take long for Mia to realize that when he said “simple dishes,” he was
being very, very modest.
“What a spectacular menu this is!” Mia let out
a cry of delight as platter after platter of epicurean creations were set on
the table, each a match for, if not superior to, the food served in the
Whitemoon Palace. The Sunkland bread, hot out of the oven, was perfectly baked.
Known to go stiff over time, this type of bread was best eaten fresh to enjoy
the crispy texture and mildly sweet aroma. Her personal favorite though, and
arguably the show-stealing star of the whole meal, had come early with the
appetizers.
“For the hors d’oeuvres, we have gelatin salad
made of sunshine tomato and salt-fried champignons du soleil,” the chef had
explained before placing the dishes down.
For the former, red, ripened tomatoes were
diced and made into an aspic. Clear and gelatinous, it resembled a jewel on the
plate. Even more beautiful, however, were the champignons du soleil. A handful
of mushrooms, each originally the size of Mia’s palm, had been sliced into thin
pieces, then fried with salt. That was all. The simplicity of the cooking
process felt to her like a challenge from the chef.
No complicated handiwork, no flashy showmanship.
I see what they’re going for. The idea is to use the minimal amount of cooking
to bring out the most of the ingredient’s natural flavor.
Mia’s eyes glinted with fascination. First,
she picked up a nearby glass of water and moistened her taste buds. Next, she
took her fork and, with graceful, deliberate motions, pushed its prongs into a
slice of champignon.
An amateur would probably cut this slice of
mushroom in two and put one half in their mouth. Not me though. As a veteran, I
know the proper way to eat these.
The slice looked a tad too large to eat in one
go. However, Mia knew better.
This was made by a chef willing to step into the
ring with nothing but heat and salt. I refuse to believe no consideration was
made for the experience of eating it.
Put simply, she’d come to the conclusion that
this slice before her, however large it looked, had been carefully prepared not
only to match the size of her mouth, but to be optimally tasty when consumed in
a single bite. And so she picked up the slice and devoured it whole.
Tears of pleasure welled up in her eyes. She could
taste the saltiness, faint but sufficient. It was the ideal amount to
complement the mushroom’s natural flavor, so plain yet so delicate. She felt
like she’d tasted the richness of the earth itself. Biting down, she felt a
supple resistance against her teeth. Chewing further, there was a soft crunch,
and what a pleasing sound it was. She kept going, and the flesh finally gave
way. Neither stiff nor mushy, the mushroom had truly been fried to perfection.
A scrumptious aroma then followed, tickling her nose. Finally, with the parting
gift of a lingering sweetness on her tongue, the experience concluded.
“Exquisite... Absolutely exquisite work...”
she said in a trancelike voice, visions of forests and slowly sprouting
mushrooms filling her mind.
Mia the mushroom connoisseur gave the chef her
utmost regard. Seeing her profound satisfaction, King Abram smiled.
“I had heard that the princess of Tearmoon had
an extraordinary fascination with food. The rumor appears to be true.”
“Oho ho, that is perhaps a little exaggerated,
but I do admit I enjoy eating a great deal.”
“Mostly true, then. Very well. I believe you
also recently made a personal visit to Perujin?”
“Yes, that is correct. If a famine were to
strike, Perujin would be a crucial source of food for us. I felt it imperative
to establish with them a relationship of mutual trust.”
A sharp twinkle flashed across Abram’s eyes.
“Tell me something, Princess Mia. I was told
by Sion that you predicted the current state of food insufficiency. Not only
that, you also insisted that poor yields will continue for years to come,
leading to a large-scale famine. Is this true?”
“The words were mine; that is true. As for
their veracity, I do not know. What the future holds is anyone’s guess. All I
can say is that our empire has prepared for a famine. We have systems in place
to ensure our people do not starve.”
“I see... To tell you the truth, I have a
number of retainers who suspect Tearmoon of stockpiling food for a war of
territorial expansion.”
“What? Father, that’s ridiculous! Who said
that?” protested Sion, visibly distressed by this revelation.
“Common sense would suggest,” replied Abram,
his tone even, “that the more likely explanation for such unusual behavior is
not prophetic knowledge of the coming of history’s greatest famine, but the
preliminary signs of a military operation.”
He looked at Mia, who replied in a tone so
soft it was more thought than statement, “My, what a slaphappy mindset...”
“Oh? ‘Slaphappy,’ you say?” Abram arched a
curious eyebrow.
“Yes. Slaphappy.”
Having lived the hell that was the great
famine, she had no better word for the attitude being described. It was
complacency of the highest order.
“War...” she continued. “In times of
abundance, perhaps... But I hardly have the resources to waste on such nonsense
when a famine is knocking on my door.”
Going to war right now was so senseless, it
wasn’t even worth her time to consider. Some might suggest an invasion to
secure more food, but no one would give up their land or crops for free. A war
would raze valuable farms, kill countless workers, and leave everyone hungrier
the ensuing year.
Granted, it might be worth it if we had such
overwhelming strength that we could scare an opponent into surrendering before
they get desperate and burn their fields...
Setting a hundred Dion Alaias loose on a
nation, for example, might do the trick. She briefly amused herself with a
mental picture of that playing out.
He’s already a one-man army, so that would be
like sending a hundred armies. Actually, I’m not sure I could look at a hundred
Dions all in one place and not pass out from sheer terror...
Ultimately, she was of the opinion that war
was no solution for famine. Its utility was entirely transitory and served only
to kick the can down the road. If it couldn’t solve the problem, then it wasn’t
a viable option.
“With ample food and ample people, you can
perhaps seek conquest and glory. But the coming era is one of hunger and
scarcity. This is no time for war. We cannot afford to be killing people and
ruining fields right now.”
A thought suddenly occurred to her, and she
added, “Oh, but using that as an excuse could be very useful.”
“An excuse? Using what as an excuse?”
“Using what I just said. Tell your people that
the Tearmoon Empire might be planning an invasion. Use that as a pretext to
start stockpiling food. That, Your Majesty, is my honest advice for you.”
“Fascinating... So you are certain, Princess
Mia, that a famine is coming,” the king said, nodding. “But in that case, this
should be a busy time for you. How is it then that you brought yourself here to
Sunkland? Is there something even more urgent?”
“Why yes, there certainly is...”
An unexpected opportunity just presented
itself, and Mia took a moment to consider how she should leap at it. This was
the perfect chance to learn more about what kind of person Prince Echard was
and what motives lay behind Sion’s assassination. She couldn’t spill all the beans, of course, but fortunately, she had an excuse
to spill just enough to get the ball rolling.
“I am here...because one of my best friends,
Esmeralda, has received a marriage proposal, and I felt the need to ascertain
the quality of her potential groom,” she proudly declared.
Her voice rang pure and clear. There was no
guilt, no deception. It was the truth. It just...wasn’t the whole
truth. A part of her truly did care about Esmeralda. Whatever other motivations
she might harbor, they couldn’t be more than, say, three percent of the whole.
The margin of error on that number might be in the many dozens, but whatever.
Three percent it was. Therefore, in that moment, Mia’s heart was as pure as a
jellyfish was water—ninety-seven percent.
Chapter 37: One Of My Best Friends - One Of = Best Friend?
Wow, so that’s the person Sion goes to school
with... The Great Sage of the Empire, Princess Mia Luna Tearmoon...
Echard was floored by the maturity and
composure with which she conducted herself. She’d handled an apology from the
king with grace and then started dining immediately after as if nothing had
happened.
Most people would be lucky not to vomit if they
had to eat with father watching them. How does she stay so calm?
Echard had never been abroad. To him, the
Kingdom of Sunkland was effectively the world, and its king was the highest
authority in existence. Of all the people he’d seen dine with his father, no
one had been perfectly at ease. Some degree of palpable tension was always
present. For nobles like Count Lampron who valued tradition, it went further,
bordering on some form of reverence. Even Echard, the king’s own son, would
sometimes shrink away from his intimidating aura.
But look at her. She’s just...eating. And
enjoying it! As if this were any other meal!
His surprise would soon turn to amazement as
the conversation proceeded.
“To tell you the truth, I have a number of
retainers who suspect Tearmoon of stockpiling food for a war of territorial
expansion.”
His father, the King of Sunkland, might as
well have drawn a blade with that statement. It was a clear challenge, and not
a friendly one. Mia parried it with a simple response—that it was a slaphappy
mindset.
To her, talk of war was slaphappy.
She’d meant it too. There was not a shred of doubt in her voice or demeanor.
The Great Sage of the Empire... Count Lampron
always grumbled about how the Wind Crows incident was merely a string of
coincidences, but... Echard snuck a quick peek at his father’s expression. He saw curiosity
and goodwill. Father thinks pretty highly of her...
This was the person his brother Sion
considered a friend. Sion, with all his gifts and talents, thought her wise and
afforded her his unqualified praise. Sion...was probably correct. Echard had
just gotten a taste of her intellect and wit firsthand.
It made him grimace. His inferiority complex
welled up like a dark ooze, filling his mind and heart. With a despondent sigh,
he looked away, shifting his gaze toward another girl at the table.
And this...is my soon-to-be
fiancée... he thought, regarding the bundle of
nerves that was Esmeralda.
“She belongs to one of Tearmoon’s Four Houses.
Her status as an Etoiline is a fine match for Your Highness.”
That was what Count Lampron had proudly
declared to him. Objectively, it was true. Once Sion inherited the throne,
Echard would doubtlessly be granted the title of duke, making them equal in
rank.
“At eighteen years of age, she is admittedly a
fair bit older, but I nevertheless believe she will be an excellent consort.”
As one of exalted blood, the bearing of heirs
was an ever-important duty. To that end, a gap of eight years was certainly an
undesirable factor. Even so, political interests often resulted in these kinds
of lopsided marriages being arranged. Such was marriage for royalty. Echard had
been taught this growing up, and he’d already accepted it as a fact of his
life. His potential bride being a much older girl did not particularly bother
him. However...
The flustered Esmeralda, when next to Mia’s
poise, made for a stark sight. The way she all but cowered like a small,
terrified animal was, frankly, a little pathetic. In fact, even the third girl,
Tiona Rudolvon, carried herself with more dignity. To be so faint of heart that
the daughter of an outcount seemed unflappable in comparison...
Echard bit his lip.
If this were Sion’s marriage, would anyone have
deemed her worthy?
The thought invited itself into his mind. The
person selected as his brother’s consort would doubtlessly be someone
overflowing with intelligence and courage. Someone like that Princess Mia... He
knew it was wrong to compare like this, to think of a sibling in terms of
better or worse. But he couldn’t help it.
Sion has it all... Was born with it all, then
given more. On the other hand, I... What chance do I have?
Words once whispered in his ear echoed in his
mind.
“Listen, it doesn’t have to be flashy. Just a
little prank. To show him up. Put him in his place. It’s for his sake,
honestly. No one can put up with perfection. Dent his image a little. It’ll do
him good.”
Spoken in a soft, sweet, almost serpentine
voice...
“Here, take this drug and slip it in his drink or
something. It just makes the gut hurt a bit. Nothing serious. I know what
you’re thinking, but just hold onto it for now, okay? Look, if you change your
mind after I leave, just throw it away. No harm done.”
They’d long slithered into his heart. Just
then...
“I am here...because one of my best friends,
Esmeralda, has received a marriage proposal, and I felt the need to ascertain the
quality of her potential groom.”
A crystalline voice pierced through his gloomy
rumination. He looked toward it to find the radiance of the moon itself.
She considers her a dear
friend...
No matter how he looked at the sorry sight
that was Esmeralda, he couldn’t see how she was in any way worthy of being a
friend of the Great Sage of the Empire. And yet that hadn’t stopped Mia from
declaring so. The princess was here to appraise the person who might marry
Esmeralda. She’d come all this way for her friend. Suddenly, the world seemed
to split in two. In one, showered with light, stood the chosen ones in all
their confident glory. In the other, mired in shadow, crouched the not-haves
huddling their pity.
Craaaack!
He felt like he heard the sound of splintering
glass. The blazing brilliance of his brother and this young sage had finally
melted the last latch in his heart. The dam broke. Out flooded defeat, and with
it, scorn.
The world went silent, save for one echoing
phrase...
“Put him in his place. It’s for his sake,
honestly.”
Oooh... I-I can’t anymore... I feel sick...
Meanwhile, Esmeralda was about to pass out
from anxiety. Her timid heart started racing the second she’d felt the king’s
daunting presence, and it hadn’t stopped ever since. The meal might as well
have been plates of sand for all she knew. She could barely remember where she
was, never mind what she was eating. Fear, uncertainty, and confusion pressed
on her chest, robbing her of her breath.
Oh no... I think I’m about to faint...
Just as the last straw of composure she’d
grasped was about to snap, she heard Mia’s voice.
“I am here...because one of my best friends,
Esmeralda, has received a marriage proposal, and I felt the need to ascertain
the quality of her potential groom.”
Her heart skipped a beat. Had her ears tricked
her? No, she’d definitely heard it. Mia had said “best friend.”
That’s right, I’m... I’m Miss Mia’s best friend!
That thought, like a fresh morning gale, blew
away the musty haze in her mind. Suddenly, she remembered who she was and what
she was here to do.
For shame! Get a grip on yourself, Esmeralda
Etoile Greenmoon! You’re a proud Etoiline, the eldest daughter of your house,
and most importantly, Miss Mia’s best friend. This is no time to be making a
fool of yourself!
She got a grip on herself—literally, by
holding herself at the hips with arms akimbo. Then, she looked, possibly for
the first time, at the person who might become her husband.
My, what a cute face he has. He looks quite
clever too. I wonder why he’s staring into space like that... It must be
because he’s shy! Oh, how adorable. I must say, this boy has some serious
potential. One day, I bet he’ll be as handsome as his brother!
Esmeralda, lover of good looks, was back in
action!
Chapter 38: Esmeralda, Lover of Good Looks, and Mia, Lover
of Good Food
Hm, how should I proceed...?
Mia mulled over her options. She needed to
find out more about Echard’s motives, but what was the best way of going about
it? Asking him whether he hates Sion or is thinking of slipping poison into a
drink in the near future was probably not going to work. While she pondered,
the Tearmoon team’s self-appointed front woman Esmeralda had already begun to
make her first move.
“My, Prince Echard, are those mushrooms not to
your liking?”
Her face, once pale with dread, had regained
its color. In fact, it seemed even rosier than usual.
Oh? Has Esmeralda finally gotten back into her
groove?
Mia felt a sense of relief. Esmeralda was her
ally, and she’d proudly insisted so despite knowing that this arrangement with
Sunkland was likely a sign of her house making a play for the throne. That was
enough for Mia to trust her and, after a moment’s consideration, leave this
entire matter in her hands. Esmeralda could be a tad unreliable at times, but
priorities had to be managed. This food, for example, wouldn’t stay hot
forever. Eating it came first.
Now, in spite of Mia’s unflattering
assessment, Esmeralda was actually pretty good with people. Having received a
noble’s education, she could inject a fair bit of wit into her conversations.
While not Mia’s match, she was also a decent dancer, capable of doing a twirl
or two without embarrassing herself. On top of that, she had one more tool at
her disposal, and that was her experience with men. Boys, rather. Growing up
around little brothers had endowed her with an unconscious ability to befriend
young boys with ease. She had the eye of a master sculptor when it came to
assessing them, and she used her skill to full effect. Within seconds, she
found an opening—the mushrooms that inconspicuously lay untouched at the edge
of his plate.
Plenty of kids have trouble eating mushrooms with
peculiar flavors. My little brothers are the same. Picky little rascals...
In case anyone’s wondering, if Mia had been
the one who noticed this, she’d have said, “Oh, what a waste. Here, I’ll eat
them for you.” Just saying.
Using a distaste for a certain food as a
starting point, Esmeralda proceeded to build rapport, turning the conversation
toward foods he did like, which she’d then use as a springboard for further
topics. Talk of seafood could be channeled into a captivating description of
seawater bathing. Mentions of red meat could lead to discussion of exotic
dishes abroad.
As a house of diplomats, the Greenmoons had an
intimate understanding of the value of information. They believed that no
knowledge could be gained in vain, and even pointless trivia could be weaved
into conversations to add color and arouse interest. By seasoning their
dialogue with a mix of topics both familiar and new to the listener, they made
themselves expert communicators, and Esmeralda had mastered this skill.
Her opener, however, did not quite elicit the
reaction she’d expected. Echard, in response to her question, took a quick glance
at Sion before shaking his head.
“No, they’re fine... I don’t really mind
them,” he said as he popped one into his mouth.
Oh? How curious. Did I
misjudge him? Esmeralda frowned. Perhaps he was the
type to leave his favorite for last. No, but... Hmm...
She trusted her eyes, and they’d definitely
seen reluctance in his. What was going on?
Again, in case anyone’s wondering, Mia was the
type to eat her favorite food first. Then, after devouring everything else on
her plate, she’d ask for another helping of it. In other words, she started and ended with her favorite! That was the Mia method.
Thank you for reading this entirely
meaningless passage that only served to illustrate her gluttonous habits. Back
to the story.
Echard’s cheeks undulated. Presumably, he was
chewing. This went on for some time before finally swallowing with an effortful
gulp. This redoubled Esmeralda’s confidence in her assessment. The boy definitely didn’t like mushrooms.
“What do you like eating, then?” she asked.
“I have no preference. Anything that our
farmers put their heart and soul into growing—anything that received the
blessing of the earth—should be and will be eaten.”
The indifference with which he said this
shocked her. Most noble children had pampered upbringings, resulting in
self-centered personalities. The more egregious ways in which this manifested
would often be stamped out in adolescence, but picky eating was not deemed too
problematic an issue and was often left uncorrected. Echard’s answer was about
as far from self-centered as one could get. She found this incongruous display
of maturity astonishing. And endearing.
Mm hm hm... I see what’s going on here. He’s
trying to look like a big boy. Oh, how adorable.
Her interest in the young prince steadily
grew.
Meanwhile, Mia’s opinion of the exchange
was...
Well, I’m glad Esmeralda got her nerves under
control, but now I’m a little worried she’s becoming too much like her usual
self. I hope she hasn’t forgotten why we’re here. Honestly, I don’t mind how
she’s into cute boys and stuff, but she shouldn’t let it distract her from more
important— Oh, moons, is this ever delicious... Mmm... What was I thinking
about again?
They were both lovers of objects disparate,
but nature alike.
Chapter 39: Have You Noticed, by the Way?
Now, for a change of pace and backdrop...
The night was dark, and the alleyway darker.
Standing in its shadow, Citrina began interrogating the man with a mark on his
cheek the shape of Dion’s fist. The other man, for the record, had received
similar treatment from Dion but failed to remain conscious, sparing him the
ensuing questioning.
Her victim was entirely unbound, but fear—or
perhaps pain—had robbed him of the use of his legs. He sat helplessly on his
rear as she slowly walked up.
“All right, I think you know the drill. Let’s
hear what you have to say,” she said as she brought her face close.
She smiled, and the man all but squealed. He
then shot a reproachful gaze at his dormant partner. Had they both remained
awake, it’d at least have been a coin toss to decide who gets interrogated.
Dion, seeing this reaction, beamed. “Yeah, you
sure lucked out, didn’t you?”
“...What?”
“Well, since you’re the only one awake, I
can’t beat you senseless. If both of you were awake, I could make an example
outta one of you to get the other to talk.” Dion leaned in and lowered his
voice to a whisper. “Would you like to be the example instead? I can wait for
your buddy to wake up.”
This time, the man did squeal.
“Dion Alaia, could you be a little less
aggressive please?” Citrina cautioned while somehow keeping her smile
unchanged. “If you scare him too much, it will make the tortur— I mean, it will
make the questioning less effective.”
She said this in the sweetest of voices. It
chilled the man to the bone. Who, he wondered through the haze of terror, was
this girl? And how did she remain so calm standing next to this man who had the
aura of someone who chopped heads off as a hobby?
It was human nature to fear the unnatural, and
this girl...was just that. The feeling he got from her, it was similar to
running into a breathtakingly beautiful woman...in the middle of a graveyard at
midnight. In a tavern, it’d be a delight. At a graveyard, it was pants-wetting.
Sadly, this realization had come too late. Had he properly considered the
dissonance of a noble girl strolling casually through a dangerous part of town
at night, none of this would have happened. Alas, hindsight offers no cure to
regret. He now had to face a smiling Citrina, whose voice grew increasingly
melodious.
“Tell me, you’re one of those bad people who
specialize in human trafficking or kidnapping, right?”
“U-Uh, no, I—”
“Tee hee, it’s okay. You don’t have to
pretend. Lies and excuses will only waste time. Both yours and mine. Whether
you’re guilty of those crimes is, frankly, not my concern right now. I do admit
I’m slightly curious about what you were planning to do to Rina, but I’ll make
a special exception and ignore that,” she said, holding her fingers to her
cheek in an adorable fashion.
Then, her smile vanished. “What I’m concerned
about right now...and what you should also be concerned about...is how you can
be useful to Rina. Do you have any ideas?”
Her head at the height of his chest, she
looked up at his face. Her large and unblinking gray eyes made him gulp.
“I suggest you think very very carefully
before answering.” Her smile suddenly returned, and she began to speak in a
slow, didactic tone. “To give you some help, let Rina just mention that Prince
Echard wandered into this area not long ago, and I’m currently looking for the
people he spoke to. If you happen to have some idea who they might be...”
“I-I don’t—”
“And I’m such a nice person that I’ll even
warn you again. The last thing I want to hear is ‘I don’t know.’ If you don’t
know, then you’d better tell me who does...or I won’t have any reason to be
nice to you anymore.”
Her smile grew even sweeter, and the man let
out a desperate shriek as his face paled.
“Now then, it’s time for an answer. Would you
happen to know the people who spoke to Prince Echard?” she asked in a voice
that suggested she was very much enjoying the exchange.
“Hmm... A man with an Equestrian accent... I
wonder if he’s still hiding somewhere nearby,” Citrina murmured after wrapping
up her interrogation. “Probably not... But just in case, maybe...”
“Sorry to butt into your conversation with
yourself, but what do you want me to do with these two?” asked Dion, looking
down at the two bound men at his feet.
“Mmm, good question. I’m not a Sunkland noble,
so I honestly couldn’t care less about policing this capital. But Bel’s here
right now, and I don’t want her to run into any trouble, so let’s notify some
castle guards,” she said before striking her palm. “Oh, forget that! More
importantly, what’s your deal with Bel, hm? With the
way she talks about you, you’d think the two of you were best buddies or
something.”
Dion arched an eyebrow. “I’ve said it once and
I’ll say it again. I have no idea what you’re talking about. I mean, I know the
girl, but that’s about it.”
That lined up with the information Citrina had
gathered. Moreover, Dion Alaia wasn’t exactly the trusting sort. Given his
personality and the fact that Bel’s origin was something of a mystery, he’d be
keeping an extra eye on her if anything. There was no way he’d be buddy-buddy with her.
That was all circumstantial evidence, though,
and circumstantial evidence meant nothing to her right now. She had her
friend’s word of mouth. To Citrina, there could be no greater truth.
Consequently, anything Dion said that ran counter to Bel’s claims, no matter
how credible it sounded, could only be false. This led her to view his current
manner in a most suspicious light.
“Ah, you’re going to play dumb, huh...? That
can only mean there’s something you’re trying to hide. What is it? Oh no, don’t
tell me...” She narrowed her eyes at him. “Dion Alaia. You’re one of those
people who likes young girls, aren’t you? And you’re after Bel.”
“Bah ha ha. Oh, please. Twenty is where I draw
the line,” he said, brushing off her allegation. “They say iron sharpens iron,
and people sharpen their friends. As for me, I prefer to be whetted by a girl
of steel. After all, there’s no fun crossing a dull blade. If we’re gonna
dance, let it be on a knife’s edge. Sorry to break it to you, but to that end,
you, the princess, and the Greenmoon girl are all the same to me. If you want
my affection, you’ll need far tougher mettle.”
“...We are talking
about the same thing, right? Romance and relationships? Why do I feel like
you’re trying to chop somebody’s head off instead?”
“Hey, passion is passion, right? Who cares
which blade it’s told through?”
“...You don’t have many friends, do you?” said
Citrina, disgusted.
Dion eyed her, then shrugged. “Not many, but
probably more than you, little miss Yellowmoon.”
As soon as he said that, Citrina’s expression
went completely flat. She looked down at the ground. “I don’t care. I have Bel.
That’s enough.”
Dion scratched his head awkwardly, aware that
he’d touched on a sensitive subject for the girl.
“Yeaaah, I mean, I get you. One soul mate is
good enough. Friends though, it doesn’t hurt to have more of those. And there’s
no rush, so...just take your time finding ’em. Might as well, now that you’re
not chained by your family anymore,” he said, sneaking an oblique glance in her
direction before looking away again.
Citrina gave him an astonished stare. “Dion
Alaia. You devious man. Were you hiding a heart under that murder-happy persona
all this time?”
He rolled his eyes. “Yeah, and it beats too. I
just don’t wear it on my sleeve.”
“Well, maybe you should sometimes. A bit of
candor goes a long way with kids. And you’re pretty good with them, it seems.
Are you sure you don’t want to consider becoming a teacher or something?”
Citrina said in a teasing tone.
He grimaced. “Hell no. Unless you’re trying to
bore me to death.”
“Really? I think it’d be a pretty good match
for you. Especially if you’re doing it under Her Highness. Boredom doesn’t last
long with her involved.”
He tried to retort her quip, came up empty,
scrunched up his face, and shook his head.
Incidentally, did anyone notice that in his
list of young girls, he’d mentioned one who was definitely over twenty—on the
inside, anyway?
Chapter 40: Slurp! This Is...Poison?!
Just as Mia was about to dig into the main
dish of the meal, a steaming platter of Sunkland beef tenderloin, she realized
something.
Wait... Wasn’t I supposed to be gathering
information?
She hadn’t done so in the slightest. Ludwig
had worked hard to give her this opportunity, and wasting it would be unwise. It
was time to get some actual work done. Thus, she took a piece of tenderloin and
placed it in her mouth. A luscious sauce, its flavor and aroma enriched by the
natural juiciness of the meat, delighted her tongue and nose. She savored the
experience, then repeated it again with a second piece. When the plate was
half-finished, she finally turned her attention from the food to her
surroundings. Well, maybe about twenty percent of her attention.
Hm, it looks like Esmeralda is doing her part of
the information-gathering pretty well. She’s really going in on Prince Echard.
I guess I should approach from a different angle.
Someone here must have some vital information
about Sion’s potential assassination, and she was going to get it. With her
resolve hardened, she finished the other half of her tenderloin before using a
slice of bread to scoop up the remaining sauce. Sauce was love. Sauce was life.
For chefs, sauces were the culmination of their skill set, distilling their
entire expertise into pure, liquid gratification. Slurping up every last drop
was Mia’s way of showing respect.
Anyway, with matters of dubious culinary
courtesy resolved, she promptly went after Sion. “I must say, Prince Sion, I’m
a little sad that you kept me entirely in the dark about this whole thing
between your brother and Esmeralda. I expected a little more candor.”
Sion smiled wryly. “I apologize for any hurt
feelings, but it’s news to me as well. I only heard about it very recently.”
“My! You didn’t know either?”
That sounded like an important piece of
information! Sensing an opening, Mia’s eyes widened with interest...
Wait a minute.
...Then shrank again.
That’s not surprising at all. This marriage was
arranged as a political counterweight against me and Sion. Of course they wouldn’t
tell him in advance. But hm, I wonder if he’s aware of Count Lampron’s
involvement and the implications of that. If he knows what the count’s goal is,
that would mean he’s letting this marriage proceed on purpose...
She chewed on the thought some more. It tasted
pretty good. Like bread. In fact, it was bread. And
the chewing was literal. Regardless, she came to the conclusion that there was
no way Sion could be in the dark about the goings-on. Her reasoning? Because
the whole thing had been kept a secret. This was Sion, after all. Perfection on
legs. His own brother might be getting married, and he hadn’t been told in
advance. Was she to believe that he’d just scratch his head and shrug after
learning about such a blatant political maneuver against him?
No way. He’s definitely looked into it, and he’s
either letting it happen on purpose, or has no choice but to let it happen.
Hmm... What’s King Abram’s take on this, I wonder?
She turned toward the king. “In any case, this
marriage between Prince Echard and Esmeralda will certainly strengthen ties
between Tearmoon and Sunkland, yes?”
“Indeed. It delights me to know that our
nations will be brought closer.” He smiled amicably. “It is good for us, and
likely good for the continent as a whole. If this great famine you speak of
truly comes to pass, then all nations must join hands against its threat. Only
then can we do our duty toward our people.”
Mia smiled back. “I am honored to have my
words taken in good faith.”
Not even a second after finishing the sentence,
she felt a strange sensation. Oh? How odd... My tummy feels a
little...
It came hard and fast, striking her right in
the abdomen. It felt like...a stomachache. She looked up with a gasp, realizing
the implications, and licked her lips, which tasted of sauce. Sauce rich enough
to mask other flavors. A chill ran down her spine.
Is... Is this poison?!
No. It was just good old indigestion from
overeating. Let there be no doubt that her impending suffering was the doing of
nothing but her own failure at portion control.
That’s right. All that previous talk about her
gut was a lie! She was neither bighearted nor big-gutted! The only thing big
about her were her delusions of the bigness of her organs. Though she believed
her stomach to be infinitely capable of accepting food so long as it was
delicious, that was ultimately no more than subjective opinion. The existence
of a volumetric limit for her stomach was an objective truth that could not be
circumvented. Said stomach had already accepted a good deal of food during her
luncheon with Rafina. Now, hit with an even greater load for dinner, it had
finally tapped out and raised the pain flag.
Also, it wasn’t that the thought of “Uh-oh, I might have eaten too much” hadn’t crossed Mia’s
mind. Her brain had just chosen escapism as a defense against shame. She’d
rather blame her episode on a bit of poison than gluttony.
The problem was that stomachaches, well, ached, and no amount of mental escapism could allow her to
escape from the actual pain she was beginning to feel. The cause could be
blamed on many things—poison, excess, whatever—but the progression was
singular.
Ugh, having to go to the privy in the middle of a
formal dinner is a terrible faux pas, but—ow, ow, ow!—I have no choice.
With tragic resolve, she rose from her seat.
“I’m terribly sorry, but I’ll need to be
excused for a few moments.”
With a graceful curtsy, she quickly shuffled
out of the dining room. With directions obtained from a maid waiting outside in
the hallway, she promptly made her way toward her destination.
After finishing her business and stepping out
of the privy, a young man approached her.
“Princess Mia...”
With his dark hair and fine looks, it was none
other than Sion’s attendant, Keithwood.
“My, Keithwood? What’s the matter?”
Her puzzlement was met with an extremely sober
look. “There’s something I thought you should know... But before that, have you
managed to contact Ludwig?”
Huh? What was that about Ludwig?
She was just about to respond with a perplexed
frown when it struck her. Keithwood thought she’d slipped out to give
instructions to Ludwig. That was good. Her response, however, was a bit tricky.
An obvious lie might make him suspicious. In an effort to keep him from
happening upon the actual and embarrassing reason of having eaten her own gut
into submission, she fudged her answer.
“Oho ho, please. You know me. I’d never do
such a thing,” she said in the kind of ambiguously suggestive tone that frankly
could be taken to mean pretty much anything.
This elicited a nod. “Ah. Very well. We’ll
leave it at that.”
“More importantly, what did you want to tell
me?”
“Yes, about that... There’s something you
should know about Prince Sion and Prince Echard...” he said, lowering his voice
to a conspiratorial whisper.
Chapter 41: A Doozy of Information from Keithwood
“This is just a hunch, but would you happen to
be wondering what Prince Sion thinks of this marriage proposal?”
“My, how shrewd of you. I certainly am.”
If information could be hunted, Mia would have
smelled blood right then and there. Keithwood was Sion’s closest vassal, and
one of the few people with whom he could speak his honest thoughts. In other
words, Keithwood could be a treasure trove of important information.
Sion doesn’t look like the type to have a lot of
friends. I wouldn’t be surprised if Keithwood is the only person he can be
honest around...
To what would have been Sion’s profound
annoyance, Mia actually felt a little sorry for him. “I assume Sion is aware of
the politics behind this situation?”
Keithwood nodded. “Yes. He is aware that Count
Lampron intends to create, through a union between Prince Echard and the House
of Greenmoon, a strong political axis to oppose the combined influence of
Prince Sion and yourself.”
“Hmm... So what does Sion think about all
this?”
“I haven’t asked him directly, but I doubt he
threw his hands up in support of the notion.”
“That’s hardly surprising. It’s strengthening
his political opponents, after all.”
“Indeed. However, I also doubt he’ll openly
oppose the arrangement.”
“Oh? And why is that?”
Keithwood grimaced. “Siblings...are
complicated. As I’m sure you’re aware, His Highness is an exceptional
individual. His exceptionalism is apparent in his swordsmanship, of course, but
it also encompasses his intelligence, his grace, his courage, and his
willingness to uphold what is right and just. He possesses every quality
required of a king. As an heir to the throne, he is, very literally, perfect.”
Hearing such unbridled praise for Sion made
Mia want to throw in an unflattering quip or two for balance, but his
compliments were watertight. Rather, they were all true.
Sion did indeed possess all the qualities that would make for a virtuous king.
“And then there’s Prince Echard, who grew up
constantly being compared to his brother.”
Mia
almost uttered an expletive out loud. Oh, the poor
kid. I feel so sorry for him. Having Sion as a brother... Moons, what a
terrifying thought!
So terrifying was the thought that she
couldn’t help but simulate it in her mind with a morbid fascination.
“Sion, I made some tea. Would you like some?”
“Ah, my dear sister Mia. As lovely and
considerate as always. Certainly, I’ll have some tea.”
“Oh, and can you help me with my homework? I
don’t get how to do this part...”
“Of course. Let’s see...”
“...Hm? Is it just me, or does having Sion as
a brother actually not sound half bad?”
Maybe having an exceptionally talented and, in
particular, exceptionally handsome older brother was a good thing. Mia was no
Esmeralda, but she wasn’t immune to the effects of a pretty face either.
Oh, but in my case, I think I’d have to imagine
him as a sister. What would it be like if I had an older sister like Sion...
Simulation, round two. This time, replace the
outside with Esmeralda, but keep the inside the same.
“Mia, my dear sister, I’m considering building a
hospital in the slums as my next project. What do you think?”
“My! I think that’s a wonderful idea.”
“Also, I’m thinking we should build a school for
the people as well. What do you say?”
“I say, yes! You have nothing but good ideas,
Esmeralda!”
“That sounds...amazing!”
All she had to do was say “yes” to every
question, and all the problems would effectively solve themselves. That was
literally Mia’s ideal life! Suddenly, she felt a pang of envy toward all the
people in the world who had highly competent older siblings.
Hmm, in that sense, having Sion as an older
brother doesn’t sound too bad... But it might be tough if Prince Echard has a
competitive personality and hates losing. Also, I guess he’s still young. Unlike
me, he doesn’t have the level of maturity necessary to understand how lucky he
is. You need a big heart to see past the bad and appreciate the good, after
all, and that comes with age.
Again, bigness, delusions, et cetera, et
cetera.
“His Highness has been watching Prince Echard
his whole life. He sees his pain, and knows how much being compared hurts
him...”
“I see. What do they call this again? The
curse of the gifted, or something along those lines?”
It was a sentiment Mia struggled to empathize
with. Frankly, it seemed like the kind of problem that was a luxury to have.
Nonetheless, she did understand that privileged or not, for the person
grappling with the problem, it was no less distressing.
“And then,” Keithwood continued, “a marriage
is arranged for his poor little brother. The bride is the daughter of a
Tearmoon Duke. The age gap is large, but her status is more than sufficient.
Furthermore, it’s a union that would benefit Sunkland’s interests. How is he
supposed to say no to something like that?”
“I see... That certainly is a complicated
issue.” Mia sighed. Now that she understood his circumstances, she couldn’t
blame him for keeping quiet. Even a bit of well-meaning advice might be taken
the wrong way.
“Isn’t it a little early for you to be getting
married?”
“What, you think you’re some kind of hotshot
because you’re getting married before me, you little punk?”
“Look at yourself. You’re worse than me in every
way. What makes you think you’re good enough for her?”
From mild concern to vicious debasement,
inferiority complexes have a way of magnifying the unintentional barbs in
others’ words. At times, those suffering would fabricate entirely baseless
fantasies to victimize themselves. Sion knew better than to give his brother
the fodder.
“Even if he spoke up against it, he’d be
suppressing political opposition against him,” she murmured musingly.
He’d effectively be acting out of personal
interest. He couldn’t possibly dismantle a promising offer of marriage for his
brother to bolster his own political position.
“But what does King Abram think? I can’t
imagine it’s as simple as, ‘It delights me to know that our nations will be
brought closer,’” Mia said, mimicking the king’s tone.
“I do believe that’s part of it, at least.
There are those who see Tearmoon stockpiling food and suspect you of planning
an invasion. This would allow His Majesty to keep such claims in check.”
“I see. A marriage involving the Greenmoons
would be a powerful argument against the invasion argument.”
Keithwood nodded solemnly. “Another part of
his calculation, I think, is to place a member of the royal family near Count
Lampron and his posse of conservative nobles.”
“Hm, hm.” Mia folded her arms and mulled over
this deluge of information.
“That’s all the information I can provide,”
Keithwood concluded somewhat hesitantly.
She smiled at him. “That’s perfectly fine.
You’ve been a great help. Though, are you sure it’s okay for you to reveal to
me so much about the royal family’s internal affairs?”
He shrugged. “I was hoping you’d help us fix
this slight dysfunction in the royal family. We vassals alone find our
power...limited. Which is why I’ve come to you to request the wisdom of the
Great Sage of the Empire.”
“My! Well, that wisdom isn’t going to come
cheap, you know? I hope you have some sort of worthy compensation in mind,” she
said, her playful grin eliciting a wry one from him.
“Very well. In that case, allow me to offer an
additional piece of information, and this one’s a doozy. The royal chef said
that dessert for today might be the best work he’s ever done.”
“My! That’s...” Mia rubbed her tummy.
“Certainly a worthwhile piece of information!”
She swiftly returned to her seat at the table.
Chapter 42: Miabel...Is Brainwashed
“All right, Miss Bel. This will be your homework
for tonight,” Ludwig said as he held out a piece of parchment.
Bel gave him a puzzled look. She wasn’t sure
why, but he seemed to be in a rush.
“Um, Professor Ludwig, are you going
somewhere?” she asked in an innocently curious voice.
He grimaced. “Please, stop it with the
‘Professor.’ You’re right, though. I will be heading out soon.” He paused for a
second. “Speaking of which, where is Miss Citrina?”
“Oh, she went out too. I’m the only one here
right now.”
“I see... Hm?” He frowned at a thought. All of
the accompanying Princess Guard, aside from the ones with Mia right now, were
currently standing by in the manor, which meant... “Ah, I was wondering why I
hadn’t seen Sir Dion around. That explains it.”
As Ludwig nodded to himself, Bel asked, “Um, Professor
Ludwig, if it’s okay, could I go with you?”
Frowning at her repeated usage of the
scholastic title, Ludwig said, “Hm. Let me think...”
He considered her request. Ideally, she’d stay
here and do her homework, but he wasn’t so naive as to believe that would
happen without his presence. Furthermore, Mia cared a great deal about her, and
Count Lampron was certainly no friend. He’d arrange for a few imperial guards
to stay with her, of course, but even then, he’d be leaving her in what was
effectively enemy territory. That was some cause for concern.
It might actually benefit her to witness some
real political back-and-forth being played out in front of her.
Ludwig didn’t believe for a minute that Bel
was Mia’s half-sister. Still, it was undeniable that the girl bore some
resemblance to her. A distant relative, perhaps. That seemed plausible.
Not only does she enjoy Her Highness’s absolute
trust, she’s also closely connected with Duke Yellowmoon’s daughter, along with
a number of people at Saint-Noel. It seems likely that Her Highness has a role
in mind for her to play in the future...
Before making up his mind, he asked her a
question for confirmation. “Miss Bel, you are acquainted with Lady Rafina,
yes?”
“Oh, yes. I know her very well. In a way, you
could even say that my fate is inextricably linked to hers!” she declared
proudly with arms akimbo.
Ludwig raised a puzzled eyebrow. “Your fate?
What do you mean?”
“Uh... Never mind. I just mean that we’re very
good friends,” Bel said hastily, realizing the incongruity of her statement.
“But why do you ask?”
He observed her for a moment, then shrugged
and answered, “Because she, in fact, is the very person we’re going to see.”
With that, they left the Lampron residence and
made their way to Solecsudo Castle. Their purpose? To first meet up with Anne.
Fortunately, having received prior instructions, she was already waiting for
them at the gate.
“My apologies for having you wait, Miss Anne.”
“Oh, I don’t mind at all. But what are we
doing here?” she asked with a puzzled look.
“I was wondering too. What are we seeing Miss
Rafina for?” added an equally clueless Bel.
“Good question. To be honest, I’m not entirely
sure myself, except... When I was speaking to Her Highness earlier and brought
up Lady Rafina, her expression changed, almost as if some troubling secret had
been exposed...”
When he’d learned that Rafina was here in
Sunkland, Ludwig had immediately thought of a potential solution to their
dilemma. If they could secure the cooperation of the Holy Lady of Belluga, it’d
send a powerful message to the Greenmoon-Echard faction.
But Her Highness made no attempt to do so... Why?
He couldn’t help but feel that the answer lay
in that odd expression she made. She seemed flustered by the fact that he knew
Rafina was in Sunkland, which suggested that she might not have wanted him to
ask Rafina for help. But he couldn’t for the life of him figure out why.
So, he decided to go find out.
Anne nodded after hearing his explanation.
“I see... It’s certainly true that milady has
a tendency to keep burdens to herself. We should definitely look into it.”
“Excuse me, Professor Ludwig,” said Bel,
raising her hand. “I have a question.”
Ludwig let out a resigned sigh. “Yes, Miss
Bel?”
Resigned, because he’d given up on getting Bel
to stop calling him “Professor.”
“Miss Mia is the Great Sage of the Empire, so
she’s aware of everything that’s going on, right? In that case, if there’s
something that needs to be done, wouldn’t she just tell us to do it?” she asked
with genuine puzzlement.
“A fair question,” answered Ludwig, switching
to didactic mode. “Remember this well, Miss Bel. Doing only as you’re told is a
mark of negligence. It is, in my opinion, a betrayal of Her Highness’s trust.”
“A betrayal of trust?”
“Yes. The fact that Her Highness permitted us
to accompany her on this journey means she has expectations of us. Each of us,
Miss Bel, has a mind capable of independent thought. Even if we’re not told,
we’re expected to exercise it. Failing to do so is therefore an act of negligence
and a betrayal of trust.”
“Even if we’re not told...” Bel murmured to
herself before nodding to some private revelation. “When you put it that way...
I think I understand. Everyone was like that. Everyone...did what they thought
was best...for me...”
Left hanging was the question of who
“everyone” referred to. Offering no further clarification, Bel quietly looked
up to meet his gaze. In that moment, a rush of something—an aura,
perhaps—seemed to stream out of her. Something truly and incorruptibly noble.
Ludwig held his breath for a second, feeling as if he was in the presence of a
sovereign.
“Then let us go,” she said, her voice ringing
with a dignified majesty no less impressive than Mia’s.
They didn’t know where Rafina was staying.
However, Anne knew someone who might—the owner of the restaurant-cum-inn that
had hosted their luncheon.
“Welcome— Oh? You...were with Princess Mia...”
The owner frowned at Anne before shifting his gaze warily toward Ludwig.
“Hello. I am a vassal of Her Highness Princess
Mia. My name is Ludwig Hewitt. I have an urgent need to speak with Lady Rafina
and wish to request your help in contacting her.”
Ludwig had heard from Anne that the man before
him was a Belluga spy. The chances of him divulging any information to a
stranger like Ludwig seemed slim, but...
“Is that so? Very well. This way, please.”
The owner readily agreed.
“I thank you for your help. But...are you sure
about this?” said Ludwig, caught off guard by the man’s frankness.
“Vassals of Princess Mia shall be afforded
every courtesy I can offer,” the owner said with a grin. “Otherwise, I’ll end
up receiving a good scolding from Lady Rafina.”
They were shown to the second floor.
I thought she’d be staying in a church somewhere
in the capital. This certainly saves us some trouble, thought Ludwig as he followed the owner.
They stopped in front of the door of the
farthest room. The owner knocked. Soon after, the door opened.
“Hm? Gosh, this is a rather interesting
group.”
Rafina appeared and greeted them with a gentle
smile. Then, she looked around and added in a slightly disappointed tone, “I
see that Princess Mia isn’t with you.”
“Indeed. Her Highness is attending a dinner
party with the King of Sunkland,” replied Ludwig apologetically.
“I see. That’s a shame. Well, come in.” She
gestured them in. To call the room modest would be both a euphemism and an
understatement. Furnished with only a bed and a simple chair, it seemed in no
way fitting for a person of her status. “I’m terribly sorry. It’s a little
cramped, isn’t it? I think we can fit the three of you, though.”
She ushered Anne and Bel onto the bed. She
herself sat in her chair, and Ludwig was seated in a second chair the owner
brought in. Bel, who clearly hadn’t expected a reception like this, kept
looking around with wide, wonder-filled eyes. Rafina smiled wryly at her.
“I assume you think this room is a bit too
plain for the Saint of Belluga?”
“Huh? N-No, I think it’s fine...”
Bel hastily and unconvincingly shook her head,
prompting Ludwig to step in.
“It is a suitably modest room for the Holy
Lady. We were simply caught off guard. We had thought you would be staying at a
church.”
“I suppose I certainly could have, but...” Her
expression clouded a little. “Sunkland is a pious nation. No less so than
Belluga. Because of that, every time I show up, I’m asked to have my portrait
drawn.”
“Portraits, you say...”
“They sell very well, apparently. The earnings
are used for charity to help the poor, so I don’t particularly mind, but
well... I’m sure you understand, yes? Try imagining a portrait of yourself with
great big wings spreading from your back, and you’re stepping on a
dreadful-looking monster like some sort of holy warrior. Would you want to be
the model for such a piece? I find it...difficult to endure.”
Her gaze went distant, and for a brief second,
she seemed to age a decade. Then, the moment passed, and she returned to her
usual self.
“Oh, gosh. Look at me rambling on and on. My
apologies. I’m not usually so chatty, but knowing you’re Mia’s friends,
well...” She giggled. “In any case, I assume you didn’t come at a time like
this just to hear me grumble. How can I help you?”
“Regarding that... We have come to ask for
your advice.”
“Oh? About what?” she asked curiously.
Ludwig studied her for a second before continuing.
“Pardon my bluntness, Lady Rafina, but how much do you know about the current
situation surrounding Her Highness?”
“Well... She told me that she’s here because
of a marriage proposal between Miss Esmeralda and Prince Echard.”
Rafina recounted what she’d heard earlier in
the day during her luncheon, collecting her thoughts after each topic before
starting the next. Near the end, she paused as something occurred to her.
“That reminds me... Mia asked me about the
views of Count Lampron and other Sunkland nobles. She also wanted to know what
I thought about them...”
Ludwig grunted. “Ah... So she was thinking about asking you for assistance...”
Why had Mia asked those questions, then? Was
she not sure whether Rafina would side with the older Sunkland nobles on this
issue? It must have been for confirmation. If Rafina’s views coincided with
those of the traditional conservatives, Mia would have to forgo her assistance.
“Oh, if she’d only asked. I’m her friend. Of
course I’d help her...” Rafina let out a mournful sigh. “But of course, it’s
because we’re friends that she chose not to, isn’t it...?”
Ludwig nodded solemnly, for he understood her
plight.
Indeed, friendship, at times, could be used as
leverage—stealthily, even. Had Mia asked, Rafina would surely have answered.
But Mia hadn’t, because she wanted to ensure the cooperation she received was
the result of honest willingness and not unintentional manipulation. So, she’d
probed her views beforehand, because Mia was the kind of person who cared not
only for her friends but the integrity of their friendship. In Ludwig’s world,
at least.
“I did tell her I don’t necessarily agree with
Count Lampron on everything, though... But ah, I see...” She sighed again, this
time even more deeply. “It’s because I told her about the matter with the
Equestrian Kingdom, isn’t it? I said I was having so much trouble that I was
hoping she’d be able to help... When she heard that, she must have shelved her
own request to not burden me further.”
Her hypothesis received a resounding nod of
approval from one of the listeners.
“I think that’s exactly what happened, Lady
Rafina,” said Mia’s most loyal subject, Anne. She spoke with utter confidence.
“Milady is a very kind and compassionate individual. If she realized that
you’re already busy with your own matters, I doubt she’d ask you for help. If
anything, she’d be thinking of ways to help you instead.”
Despite her utter confidence, she was, of
course, utterly wrong. Unfortunately, no one present could correct her grievous
misassumption. As a result, the conversation steadily morphed into an echo
chamber of Mia worship.
After they’d heaped all the praise they could
on her, they finally returned to their original topic.
“Oh, I wish I knew how to help her,” said
Rafina. “Do you know, Ludwig? Could you tell me what I should be doing? What
does Mia wish for me to do?”
“If I am to attempt to interpret Her
Highness’s intentions, I believe they will be...”
And so, Ludwig proceeded to expound on the
vast and immeasurable depths that was Mia’s mind and deliberation. Rafina was
impressed. Anne was awed. And Bel...
“Wow... Grandmother Mia is amazing!”
Bel was straight up brainwashed.
Chapter 43: Another Big Sister
While Mia was busy pulling critical
information out of Keithwood, a friendly conversation had developed between the
remaining members in the dining room.
“Ah yes, I am reminded that she is acquainted
with Keithwood. In that case...” murmured King Abram.
Tiona Rudolvon observed his quiet musing with
idle interest. At first, knowing that she was attending a dinner party with
royalty, she’d arrived tense and apprehensive. Afraid of giving accidental
offense, she took extra care to conduct herself with the utmost courtliness. As
the dinner went on, however, her initial anxiety was eased by the cordial
atmosphere. Conscious thought faded, and ingrained discipline took over.
As a backlash against the condescending
attitude of central nobility, Tiona had trained herself from a young age to
meet, if not surpass, every standard of polite society. From courtly manners to
scholarly know-how, she’d acquired a host of skills, going so far as to drill
herself in swordsmanship, all so conceited nobles would stop looking down on
her.
Today, that tireless self-improvement bore a
most impressive fruit. Freed from nerves, her natural character shone through,
radiating a singular aura unlike any other in the room. Unlike Esmeralda, who
was the potential bride, and Mia, for whom the marriage could have significant
consequences, Tiona was a bystander of sorts. She had no skin in the game and
could therefore observe the scene from her own unique perspective.
She
shifted her gaze from the king to Sion. Prince Sion
cares a lot about Prince Echard, doesn’t he?
She resonated deeply with Sion’s position.
Esmeralda wasn’t the only big sister present. Tiona also had a little brother.
On top of that, Cyril, having been for a long time a timid young boy lacking
confidence, bore a great deal of resemblance with Echard. She knew all too well
how he felt, watching his flustered brother struggle with a barrage of
questions from Esmeralda while discreetly—ever so discreetly—throwing in a few
careful words from time to time to take some heat off the poor boy without
denting his delicate pride. The line between stifling protectiveness and
injurious neglect was thin, and the stress of walking it was, in Tiona’s eyes,
painfully evident on Sion’s face. It was, in a way, endearing to watch.
Boys can be such a handful, she thought, realizing with a slight hint of guilt that the endearment
she felt was not only for the younger prince. The sight of Sion, always so
perfect and beyond reproach, struggling so much was, frankly, adorable. What
left the greatest impression on her, however, was when the king had been
talking to Mia earlier, and Echard had been trying his best to follow the
conversation. Sion had snuck a glance at his brother then, and Tiona had not
failed to catch the sheer pride in Sion’s eyes. It was a pride that hit very
close to home.
I know the feeling. He’s probably hoping Her
Highness will rub off on his brother a little.
It was clear that important talks would be had
between Mia and the king. By having Echard listen in, Sion was doubtlessly
hoping for his brother to learn a thing or two from the exchange.
I felt the same toward Cyril...
Ever since meeting Mia that day, Cyril had
changed. Before she knew it, the shy, unassertive brother she’d always known
had metamorphosed into a vital member of Mia’s team, working alongside the
princess of a neighboring nation for the good of all. Having encouraged him for
as long as she could remember, Tiona felt immensely proud of her brother. At
the same time, she also couldn’t help but feel a tinge of envy toward Mia. What
she’d failed to do her whole life, Mia had accomplished with one meeting. As
glad as she was for the results, that was still a hard pill to swallow...
Comforting him... Nursing his broken heart...
That still falls to me in the end, doesn’t it?
Cyril had a crush on Mia. That was all but
certain. Equally certain was its unrequitability. It was an impossible love,
and it was up to her to console her brother when he faced the inevitable
reality of his feelings. This was, in fact, something that occupied her
thoughts with some frequency.
In any case, the point was that Tiona knew
what it was like to have little brother troubles. Sion was probably hoping that
like himself—like everyone whose lives Mia had entered, perhaps—Echard would be
changed for the better by his encounter with her.
Now that I think about it, it really is the same
for everyone, isn’t it? Her Highness truly is something else...
People who crossed paths with Mia would,
without exception, experience positive change. Personal growth. As Tiona did
herself. Turning her thoughts to the luncheon with Rafina, she was reminded of
the time she’d confronted the perpetrators of her confinement incident...and forgiven them. There had once been a Tiona who wouldn’t
have—couldn’t have—forgiven. That was a Tiona concerned only with getting back
at the central nobility she so despised.
We all met Her Highness, and we all changed...
It was as if the world itself would transform
as Mia touched it. Like a beacon of change, a new reality—one that was
brighter, warmer—slowly expanded from her to replace the old. The thought, however,
begged a question.
What if she hadn’t met Mia? What would have
happened to her? Desperate for comeuppance, to what lengths would she have gone
to even the score with the central nobility? Seething in bitter hatred born of
anger and frustration, she’d surely have sworn never to forgive them. What
future awaited that version of herself?
Suddenly, a strange scene flashed before her
eyes. She saw a grand square soaked in the crimson light of the setting sun.
Victory reverberated through the air, empty and hollow. Before her, mired in
irretrievable red, was what she’d fought so hard to lose. It was lost now. And
so was she. All that remained was bone-weary apathy.
It was an impossible scene, too fanciful to be
real, yet too real to be mere fancy. A resurfaced nightmare, perhaps, from a
restless night...
Just then, the door to the dining room swung
open, and Mia returned smiling like some great weight had been lifted from her
shoulders...or her bowels.
Her Highness looked so troubled when she left,
but she seems to be in a much better mood now. I wonder if she’s figured out a
way to deal with Miss Esmeralda’s issue...?
That had to be it.
She’s always so amazing. Maybe she’ll somehow
solve Prince Sion’s problem in the process too...
To her, the rift between Sion and Echard was
clear as day and had been bothering her the whole meal. Worse yet was the
knowledge that it was being exploited by other nobles for political gain,
making Sion’s already-awkward position even more difficult. It was a
complicated issue for which Tiona couldn’t fathom a solution. But if Mia were
to tackle it... Surely, like every problem that had come before, she’d solve it
with ease.
And is that...okay?
She heard a small voice in her head. Perhaps
Mia could indeed make everything better. Did that make it okay for Tiona to
stand idly by?
Are you okay with that? No
regrets?
If the problem was solved, but not by her...
If you speak now, he’ll still hear... He’s still
within reach...
The voice, hers yet not, faded to a distant
echo, then disappeared, leaving behind a frustrating uncertainty in her heart.
She took a bite of dessert. The taste escaped her.
For those who were paying attention, though,
Keithwood’s words proved true, and the dessert was
indeed a doozy.
“Th-This is... Moons, this can’t be...”
So much so that it left Mia speechless when
she first laid eyes on it. An irrelevant fact, but a fact nonetheless.
Chapter 44: Debriefing Session
“Phew, that was some good eating,” said Mia.
“I’m so full. Eating so much probably isn’t good for my health, though. I’d
better start reining it in...after this Sunkland
trip.” In other words, while she was still in Sunkland, she was going to keep
stuffing her face. “Hmm... Being so full is making me sleepy...”
Her eyelids began to droop, and she stifled a
yawn as she walked out the royal castle. Waiting outside the gate was Anne,
whom she greeted with a wave of her hand.
“Ah, there you are. Sorry to have kept you
waiting... Oh?” She paused, realizing Anne wasn’t alone. “My, Ludwig and Bel?
What’s going on?”
She gave them a puzzled look.
“Uh, I can explain later, but first, let’s
hurry up and head back to Count Lampron’s residence,” said Anne.
“Mm. All right then.”
Given how sleepy she felt, she was ready to
crawl into bed, but it was too early to retire for the night. The ball was
drawing close, and she still had to consolidate all the new information she’d
gained. There was no time to lose. With that in mind, she convinced her eyelids
to stay open for a little longer.
Upon returning to the Lampron residence, she
immediately paid Esmeralda a visit in her room.
“My! Miss Mia! How nice of you to visit. Here,
I’ll have some tea made for us.”
A cup of steaming black tea was soon placed
before Mia, into which she added some milk and a lot of sugar. A sip and a sigh
of pleasure followed. Then, she said, “So, Esmeralda, let’s hear it. What do
you think about Prince Echard?”
“Hm, good question...” Esmeralda folded her
arms. “He’s still got a long way to go, but I can see him getting there
eventually. His face is definitely a ten out of ten. Still young, especially
around the eyes and the bridge of the nose, so the overall impression still
skews more cute than handsome. Give him some time, and I’m sure he’ll become as
stunningly good-looking as Prince Sion or his father. Also, we talked a bit,
and he seemed fine in terms of personality too. A little shy, perhaps, but that
can change as he grows older.”
Thus concluded Esmeralda, professional boy
appraiser.
“A true diamond in the rough, that boy!” she
added. “It’ll take some work, but he’s definitely worth it!”
It seemed that the prince had met Esmeralda’s
standard of attractiveness.
“The one thing that worries me, I suppose,”
Esmeralda continued in a musing tone, “is the existence of his exceptional
brother... When I mentioned Prince Sion, his expression darkened for a second.
I wonder if his relationship with his brother has left some sort of scar in his
heart...”
Mia found herself deeply impressed by this
analysis. It lined up perfectly with what Keithwood had told her. Wow, she figured all that out from one dinner? Credit where credit
is due. She really does have an eye for this kind of thing. Also,
Esmeralda must have taken quite a liking to the prince, judging by the amount
of thought she was putting in. If she actually likes him,
then this marriage proposal isn’t something I can just sabotage anymore.
Of course, letting it proceed would likely benefit her opposition, putting more
roadblocks in her path to becoming empress.
“I wish there was some way for me to help heal
that wound of his...” Esmeralda murmured.
Mia, too busy with her own thoughts, paid
little attention.
But then again, at home, Esmeralda behaves like a
queen. Her little brothers have got nothing on her. And those little brothers are
the ones who’ll have to challenge me as contenders for the throne, so...
Maybe it wasn’t even that bad.
“That’s not something I can do anything
about,” Mia muttered, nodding to herself before looking Esmeralda in the eye.
“I’ll have to leave that side of things to you,
Esmeralda.”
Esmeralda stared back with mouth agape. “Huh?
You’re...leaving it to me?”
Mia grabbed her shoulder and gave it a quick
shake. “Come on, girl, what’s with the dumb look? Get a hold of yourself. You
can do this.”
What she meant to convey was, “You always get
what you want, right? Just keep doing that.” So long as Esmeralda was calling
the shots in the Greenmoon family, things would be fine.
As for whether Esmeralda correctly interpreted
this meaning...
“Miss Mia... I never knew you trusted me so
much... All right, just leave it to me, then!”
Well, she nodded back, anyway.
After exiting Esmeralda’s room, Mia crossed
her arms in thought.
Now then... I think I have the political side of
things under control. The problem now is the whole assassination affair. I have
to do something about Echard’s inferiority complex, or he’ll probably keep
going after Sion,
she mused as she made her way toward her own guest room. Easier said than done. This is really something that Esmeralda should
be handling since she’s the one getting married, but for all her talk of
handsome boys, she actually has very little romantic experience with them...
It was then that a crucial realization dawned
on her.
“Wait a minute... Am I
the more experienced one here? After all, I’ve been on long rides with a number
of gentlemen, and I’ve danced with Abel a couple times too. I’ve even danced
with Sion before... Hm, you know what? I do have more
experience with men. If anyone can heal Prince Echard’s psychological scar, it’s
probably me,” she murmured pensively as she entered her room.
Inside, Anne, Bel, and Ludwig were waiting for
her.
“Oh, I’m sorry to have kept all of you
waiting. Is something the matter?” She raised an eyebrow. Bel raised both in
return.
“As a matter of fact,” said the young girl
excitedly, “we spoke to Miss Rafina.”
“My, Miss Rafina?”
“Yes. We went to her to request her aid,”
Ludwig explained. “I figured we’d use our enemy’s scheme against them.”
Huh... What scheme? And we’re using something
against them? What? Her head began to acquire the stereotypical tilt of confusion. She
immediately grabbed it with both hands and wrenched it straight again. Phew, close one... I almost gave away the fact that I have no idea what
he’s talking about! Which must be because I’m feeling sleepy, and my head isn’t
working as well as it should.
“I understand that Your Highness does not wish
to burden Lady Rafina with our troubles, but we made the arbitrary decision to
consult her,” said Ludwig.
“I’m sorry, milady. I’m the one who took them
to Lady Rafina. If that was against your wishes, then I...I apologize,” said
Anne, the concern in her expression growing inversely with the volume of her
voice.
Mia smiled reassuringly at her. “It’s all
right. Don’t worry.” She had no idea what it was that might have needed
worrying about, but whatever.
I wonder what burden he’s talking about... And
what did they ask Miss Rafina to do?
She glanced at Ludwig, hoping to find some
answers. She received only a firm nod in response. It seemed to imply something
of a “Trust us. We’ve got this under control.”
Hmm... Ludwig apparently has a plan. Well,
whatever. We’re desperately in need of more allies right now anyway. It can’t
hurt to have Miss Rafina on our side, she thought before something else occurred to her. But didn’t Miss Rafina say she was dealing with some trouble on her
end? I wonder if this means I’ll have to help her with that in return...
After all, these kinds of arrangements tended
to be give and take. If Rafina scratched her back, she’d have to scratch
Rafina’s back as well.
What did she say again? Something about the
Equestrian Kingdom, I think?
Just then, Bel chipped in with a frown. “By
the way, Miss Mia, would you happen to know anything about Rina? She left a
while ago and still isn’t back.”
“My, Rina? She went out by herself at night?”
Mia said, shocked.
As the only daughter of Duke Lorenz Etoile
Yellowmoon, she was the apple of his eye—his absolute pride and joy. Duke
Lorenz Etoile Yellowmoon was also a master of poisons. It therefore went
without saying that if anything were to happen to Citrina, Mia might end up
eating something upsettingly poisonous in the near future.
She leapt to her feet in a panic. Or rather,
she would have, had Ludwig not said, “Speaking of which, I haven’t seen Sir
Dion around here either. I suspect he might have followed her out.”
“Ah, I see. Dion’s with her, is he? In that
case...”
Mia breathed a sigh of relief. The math worked
in her favor. They could throw an army at Citrina, and she’d still come out
fine. After all, with Dion at her side, she’d be at an army plus one. In Mia’s
mind, his one-man-army-ness was becoming a mathematically accurate description
of his prowess. The only potential cause for concern now was Dion rubbing off
on Citrina. She had a feeling Duke Yellowmoon wouldn’t be pleased if his
daughter acquired a taste for more stabby methods of
assassination. His displeasure might lead him to exact his vengeance in kind,
and Mia certainly didn’t want any daggers flying at her from the shadows.
Regardless, Citrina’s safety was, for now,
guaranteed.
“I think we have nothing to worry about,” said
Mia.
Bel nodded. “I agree. If General Dion is with
her, then she’s safe as can be.”
A knock then sounded at the door.
“Excuse me, Your Highness. I’m back.”
“Ah! Rina!”
Bel rushed over as the door opened, revealing
her best friend.
“Hm? Bel, what are you doing awake at this
hour?” asked a surprised Citrina before scanning the room. “Oh, no... Don’t
tell me they forced you to make up for all the homework you skipped during the
day, and you’ve been doing it until now...” She glared at Ludwig.
Bel, however, puffed out her cheeks
indignantly. “Hey! It’s not very nice of you to assume I skipped doing my
homework just because you weren’t here, Rina! That makes it seem like I can’t
get my homework done on my own!”
Which, you know, was true, but...
“Oh, I didn’t mean it that way, Bel,” said
Citrina, hastily shaking her hands. “I know you can get things done if you put
your mind to it.”
She looked nervously at Bel, who kept doing
the pufferfish thing with her face for a few more seconds before breaking out
in giggles.
“Ehe hee, got you! I was just kidding, Rina!”
said Bel, sticking out her tongue mischievously.
“Ah! That’s so mean! I don’t like it when
you’re mean, Bel!” Citrina thrust her lips out in a sullen pout. It did not
take long, however, for the two girls to be giggling away again, innocent
smiles restored to their faces.
It should be noted that Citrina’s description
of Bel could also be interpreted as “utterly incapable of getting anything done
if she doesn’t put her mind to it.” However, no one in the room was truly mean
enough to point that out. They simply watched with tender gazes as the two
girls enjoyed a moment of pure, unbridled friendship. Finally, after they’d
thoroughly laughed their hearts out, Citrina stepped up to Mia. The girl now
wore her usual sweet, flowerlike smile.
The way she can just change her expression like
that is honestly amazing. It’s like she’s flipping a switch...
Citrina proceeded to report on her findings.
“I spent this evening investigating the open market. Sir Dion Alaia graciously
offered his help, so I brought him with me as well.”
Huh. The open market?
Mia tensed the muscles in her neck, resisting
the urge to tilt her head. She needed to appear thoughtful, not clueless. For
some extra camouflage, she folded her arms. “Hm... So you went to the open
market with Dion... Did you discover anything there?”
“Yes. To make a long story short, someone
there previously had some form of contact with Prince Echard.”
“With Prince Echard, you say...” Mia hummed
pensively to hide the fact that she was really starting to sweat. She had
absolutely no idea what Citrina was talking about. She didn’t even know what an
open market was. Admitting so was out of the question, but the issue also
seemed too risky to ignore. As she tried to think of a way to subtly coax out
some answers, Citrina leaned in and stared her in the face.
“Uh, Your Highness?”
Mia almost jumped, thinking her cover of
comprehension had been blown, but...
“Is it okay for them to
be hearing about this?” asked Citrina, gesturing with her eyes toward Ludwig
and Anne.
“Ah, uh... Of course. They’re...” said Mia
before trailing off. A brilliant idea came to her. One that could completely
turn the tide in this losing battle she was fighting against her own
cluelessness. “They’re my most loyal subjects. I keep nothing from them, nor is
there any need to. By all means, please explain to them the implications of
your current discoveries. I suspect all this sudden talk about the, uh,
open...market? Might be a tad confusing for them.”
She glanced at Ludwig, who nodded deeply.
“Thank you, Your Highness. We would also appreciate the chance to fully grasp
the current situation.”
Citrina nodded as well. “Understood. In that
case, Your Highness, would it be all right if we called Dion Alaia here? I’d
like to have him speak about what happened tonight as well.”
“Certainly. Go ahead.” Mia gave the final nod,
which conveniently allowed her to hide a breakthrough yawn.
Midnight was upon them. A new day was about to
arrive.
Chapter 45: The Challenge (Received) by Great Detective Mia
While waiting for Dion, Citrina relayed to the
rest of the members in the room what she’d learned from Connery. She described
how the open market was a fairly rough neighborhood and that Prince Echard had
gone missing for a short time there.
“The open market... I see. Markets thrive on
disorder. The looser the regulations, the more vibrant the businesses.
Furthermore, given its distance from the castle, some degree of negligence in
policing is, I suppose, inevitable,” said Ludwig, nodding along to the
explanation.
“However,” Citrina continued, “the large
amount of traffic in and out of the open market gives Serpents lots of easy
cover. The Second Prince going missing in a place like that sounded too
suspicious, so I went to investigate the area myself. Fortunately, it didn’t
take long to find the information I needed. Apparently, there was a strange man
who had spoken to Prince Echard...”
After extracting the necessary information
from her assailant-turned-victims, Citrina had explored the outskirts of the
open market. As Connery had said, it was teeming with the type of people who
seemed connected with the criminal underside of society. Which was exactly what
she’d been hoping for. At her request, Dion proceeded to start tapping on every
shoulder he came across and asking said shoulders’ owners some questions. By
tapping, we of course mean with his sword, and by asking, we of course mean
interrogation. Needless to say, he met with little resistance.
Upon
hearing this, Mia immediately thought, Yes, that’s
certainly in character for Dion. Honestly, I pity the people he ran into. They
might think they’re tough stuff, but no one out-thugs Dion.
Meanwhile, Citrina kept explaining.
“In the process of questioning the people we
came across, we got some information pointing us to what was probably the
hideout of the strange man, so we went there to take a look...”
Citrina silently looked up at the sky. Clouds
had covered the moon, leaving the land darker than ever. Hidden under a thick
veil of shadow, the open market was oddly quiet. The daytime sounds of
business—bartering customers, jingles of goods and money—were all gone,
replaced by silence. A silence that, for all its lack of sound, was filled with
a restless energy. Citrina knew this feeling well. It was the silence of being
watched. By many, many eyes.
“Huh. So, this is the open market.” She
glanced around before adding, “I wouldn’t want to come here even when it’s
bright out.”
It wasn’t a suitable place to bring Bel. It
also didn’t seem interesting enough to be worth a solo saunter.
“There’s a good number of them watching us
from a distance. Guess I’ll go round a few of them up...” said Dion.
“No, that won’t be necessary. They’ll probably
just tell us the same thing anyway.”
Citrina shook her head and shrugged. All the
men they’d “questioned” had told them the same two things: the person who
attempted to contact Prince Echard spoke with an Equestrian accent, and they
were hiding out in a building not far from the open market.
“A few also mentioned that they had no idea
when the man came to Sunkland, and they haven’t seen him lately,” Citrina
murmured.
It hadn’t taken much convincing to get any of
them to speak, so the information gathering process had gone fairly quickly.
However...
She pursed her lips and hummed with mild
frustration.
This is obviously a trap. I doubt we’ll wring any
information out of these people that wasn’t meant to be given to us.
She sighed. At least she had the man standing
behind her though. The presence of the Empire’s Finest, Dion Alaia, was
profoundly encouraging. Princess Mia’s sharpest sword carried himself with the
aplomb of someone who walked into traps for fun.
So she figured she’d try doing exactly that.
Shortly after passing through the open market,
the building in question appeared before them. With almost theatrical timing,
the clouds parted to illuminate its exterior in silver moonlight. It was a
crude structure made of stone, not dissimilar to its neighbors in design or
quality. There was a wooden door flanked by two windows that were boarded up.
The moon would not follow them inside.
“Dion Alaia, how well do you see in the dark?”
“Eh, okay, I guess? As good as the next guy.”
“I see...”
Citrina considered what “okay” meant in the
context of the Empire’s Finest.
He seems like the kind of person who can probably
take down four or five people blind, so...
Based on the few times she’d dealt with the
wolfmaster before, she knew him to be a warrior who could fight proficiently
with his vision impaired. If he could do it, surely, Dion could too.
“In that case,” she said, “let’s see... How
about we take a careful look at the surroundings and then break down that
wooden door?”
“You want to go in? Seems like a pretty clear
trap.”
“But you’ll protect Rina if anything happens,
right, Sir Empire’s Finest?” She smiled tauntingly at him, causing him to shake
his head.
“First, the princess, and now you... I swear,
what is it with young Tearmoon noblewomen and their love for recklessly
charging into danger?”
Citrina did not grace his quip with a
response. She walked quietly up to the building and peered in through a crack
in the window. Silent darkness greeted her.
“Dion Alaia. I’ll have you know that I resent
your description of my actions as reckless. This building is big enough that
even if they set it on fire, we’ll have enough room to escape. If a bunch of
them ambush us inside, then you can deal with them. There’s nothing reckless
about this at all.”
She took a step back and pointed at the door.
Dion sighed and complied. There was a quick flash, and the door was no more,
reduced to two severed pieces of wood. As expected, it was pitch-black inside.
“Just to be clear, Lady Yellowmoon, danger
doesn’t care about definitions. If you don’t consider this reckless, that’s
fine, but from this point on, you’d better be extra
not reckless. Hiding behind me, preferably. Get too careless, and you might not
walk back outta here alive.”
“Yes, yes, you’ve made your point clear
already. Shall I hold hands with you, since you’re so worried?”
Despite her flippant response, she
nevertheless obeyed, keeping close behind him as he eyed the surroundings
warily and slowly walked in.
“Hmph... Looks like nobody’s home,” he
muttered with mild disappointment. “What now, Lady Yellowmoon? We’re going to
need a light if we want to look around.”
That was when they heard a heavy thump, and
some sort of powder filled the air.
Dion tsked. “Bloody
hell... Is it poison?”
In one smooth motion, he threw his coat around
Citrina’s head, covered his face with one arm, and picked her up with the
other. A few bounding strides, and they were back outside.
“No, Dion Alaia. It probably isn’t,” muttered
Citrina, dangling from his arm. “Otherwise, they wouldn’t fill the whole
building with it like that. It’d be a waste. Also, it’s too conspicuous. Making
it so obvious defeats the point of using poison.”
His sword leapt out of its scabbard as he
dashed out the door. He whipped his gaze left and right, scanning the area.
There was no sign of any assailants. Nevertheless, he kept his guard up and his
sword drawn. Only after a long period of silent vigilance did he relax.
“Not poison, huh?” he said, spitting on the
ground. “The hell was that supposed to be then? A prank?” He sheathed his sword
and patted the powder out of his hair. “No, that’s not it either.”
Citrina arched her back and stretched before
holding up her hand at him and waving it a few times. He glanced at her and,
seeing her outstretched hand, knelt down before her so she could reach his
head. She brushed her fingers through a tuft of his hair, picking up a pinch of
powder. She played with it a little before bringing it up to her nose. Then,
she licked some off the tip of her finger.
“Hey!” shouted Dion in sudden alarm.
She shot him an oblique glance before taking a
sip from the water flask she’d brought with her and rinsing her mouth.
“Relax. It’s just flour. Flour that’s gone
bad.”
“Flour? What were they hoping to accomplish by
dumping a ton of flour into the room? Did they drop it by accident or
something?” He eyed her dubiously.
“I’ve heard that filling the air in a room
with powder and setting it alight will cause a sudden and violent combustion.
It’s effectively a makeshift bomb.”
“Huh. They tried to flour bomb us into
oblivion? Do these guys have too much time on their hands or something? They
couldn’t come up with a simpler way to kill us?” He scoffed.
Citrina gazed at the ground wordlessly for a
few seconds before responding. “Dion Alaia. Do you know what the perfect poison
is?”
“Beats me. One that kills you the second you
take a sip?”
She shook her head. “The way I see it, the
perfect poison is one that leaves no trace of it having been used. The best way
to kill someone is to make it look like they died naturally, raising no
suspicion of assassination in the first place. The second best is to kill in a
way that makes it very obvious what poison was used. A
poison that kills in a highly identifiable fashion can be used to divert
suspicion or highlight fake suspects,” Citrina explained. “As for this flour...
I suspect it’s just an elaborate parting gift. If their goal was to lure out
and incapacitate their pursuers, they could have used paralyzing poisons or
blinding agents. As long as they immobilize us, they can do whatever they want
with us afterward, be it questioning or torture. This, however...is a simple
parting gift. They knew we were hunting them, so they left a fake trail for us
to follow, at the end of which was a simple contraption to get rid of us for
good.”
“They faked an obvious trail to hide the real
one, huh?”
“If we search very carefully, maybe we can
find some traces of the real trail...but if they throw us a bone, we might as
well bite, right? Especially when we’re pressed for time. A fake trail is still
a trail.”
Dion crossed his arms with a hmph. “And that bone led us to this building, which was
intended to blow up while we were searching it?”
“That’s correct. It wouldn’t draw any
attention. All that would be left is some charred debris and the remnants of
burnt flour. Between that and a poison-soaked room with two dead bodies inside,
which one do you think would raise more suspicion? This contraption is in the
same vein as traceless poisons that feign natural death. Except in this case,
it looks like an accident,” said Citrina as she studied the building.
“Well, in any case, it seems that we’ve come
up empty-handed. We have no clear evidence this is Serpent-related, and at this
point, the whole Equestrian accent thing is sounding pretty dubious too...”
said Dion with a shrug.
Citrina gave him a sweet smile.
“There’s no need to be too disappointed, Dion
Alaia. The Serpents are almost certainly behind this.”
“And what makes you say that, Detective
Yellowmoon?”
She met his jeering tone with an even sweeter
smile. “Rudimentary, my dear knight. Did you know you can use flour to blow up
a building? Did the possibility of such a trap even cross your mind before I
told you about it?”
“Aaah... I see.”
“This trap, once activated, will look like
nothing more than a building crumbling, or at most an accidental fire. If kept
inactive, the only evidence is a room full of flour. To most people that would
mean nothing. To someone in the know—someone like Rina—it’s an ingenious trap
made by someone who’s equally in the know. Secret knowledge available only to a
select few is great for concealing evidence, but to knowing eyes, it might as
well be a name tag. Only so many people can make such things, after all.”
At that, she paused and tilted her head in
thought for a while before continuing.
“On that note, the Equestrian accent... That’s
not useless information either.”
“Why’s that?”
The sweetness in her smile turned into sheer
honey, viscous and ensnaring. “Why, because if they want to make it look like
the Equestrian Kingdom is behind this...then there are only so many poisons
they can use.”
“That concludes my report of tonight’s
findings. Dion Alaia, is there anything you’d like to add?”
“Not really. Except, I guess, to advise Your
Highness never to make an enemy of the Yellowmoons,” he said with a shrug.
Bel grinned. “That’s okay. There’s no way Rina
will ever become our enemy.”
“Bel...”
Before the two girls could begin another
public display of their affection, Mia let out what was definitely a breath and
not a yawn and said, “Rina, are you able to deal with all the poisons that come
from the region around the Equestrian Kingdom?”
“Yes, every last one, Your Highness,” Citrina
answered with a bow.
“I must say though, the Equestrian Kingdom...
This term has been coming up rather frequently as of late... Miss Rafina said
she came here because of something related to them too... I wonder if there’s
any significance to that...” murmured Mia.
She let out another not-yawn.
With that, Mia’s information gathering was
complete. With all the pieces at her disposal, could the Great Sage of the
Empire solve the puzzle and guide the incident toward a wholesome resolution?
“Fwaaaah... No, I can’t do this anymore... I’m
too sleepy...”
And would she have to do it in her sleep?
Only time would tell.
Side Chapter: The Fair and Righteous King of Justice
The Penal King, Sion Sol Sunkland, was a man
of many enemies. His detractors would frequently speak ill of him: denouncing
him in public and cursing him in private. But even his most vehement critics
couldn’t deny one thing about him, and that was the impartiality of his
judgment. He was just in his actions. Unrelentingly so, entirely unswayed by
personal emotion or interest. When asked about him, one opinion would always be
unanimous.
“His Majesty the Penal King is fair and just.
There’s no doubt about that. If he deems you guilty, he will put you to the sword,
no ifs, ands, or buts. After all, he did so to his own brothers, one by blood
and one by nurture. His royal sibling. His most trusted attendant. He executed
both of them. Don’t know if that’s a good thing, mind you, but he sure did.”
That day, an old noble came to the king’s
office.
Sion quietly looked up as an attendant
announced the arrival of a visitor. The face of the man standing before him was
one he has known for most of his life.
“Count Lampron. How have you been these past
few years?”
The count smiled. Sion noted the nervous
tension in his cheeks. “Very well, Your Majesty. It gladdens me to see you in
good health as well.”
Count Lampron was once the leader of
Sunkland’s conservative nobles. He also served as Echard’s teacher for some
time. It wasn’t too long ago when he finally withdrew from the front lines of
politics into what was effectively semi-retirement. In the process, his
commanding aura and attitude seemed to retire as well, leaving behind an
elderly man with a much milder temperament.
Sion gave him a curious look, wondering what
business the emeritus count could have. “Good, good. But what brings you here
today? If it is nostalgic banter you seek, I would gladly indulge you were it
not for the insurrection. There is still much work to be done in cleaning up
the aftermath. I fear I have little time for casual discourse.”
Ten days ago, a revolt had occurred in a part
of Sunkland. Fed up with Sion’s austere governance, a number of nobles had
rallied around the former second prince Echard and, using him as a banner,
attempted to stage a large-scale insurrection. Unfortunately, they’d picked a
poor fight, for their opponent was Sion Sol Sunkland—king, genius, and
merciless enforcer of justice. Having caught wind of the plot in its infancy, he’d
immediately deployed his personal army against the conspirators. Under his
direct leadership, it didn’t take long to apprehend the whole lot. All the
offenders were thrown into the underground dungeon. Among them was his own
brother, Echard.
“The insurrection is exactly what I wish to
speak about, Your Majesty.” Lampron reverently bowed before meeting Sion’s
gaze.
“I beg you to reconsider His Highness Prince
Echard’s execution. He could not have participated in this willingly. I am sure
he tried his best to persuade the other ringleaders from engaging in such an
act of treason.”
“So you say... But I have reason to think
otherwise. Echard has always seen himself as inferior to me, and has struggled
greatly with this perception. It seems entirely possible for the others to have
persuaded him, and for him to leap at a chance to dethrone me.”
“But...”
“In either case, his actions have burdened the
kingdom with needless chaos. Innocent blood was spilt as a consequence. He must
be made to answer for his deeds.”
“He’s your brother, Your Majesty! You share
his blood—”
The Penal King cut him off, severing his last
hope in the process. “Even so... No, especially so.
Because he shares my blood, Count Lampron, his punishment must not be
lessened.”
“Don’t you see, Lampron? You spent your whole
life insisting that the rule of the king in Sunkland must be just and fair. You
of all people must understand. I am the king.”
Absolute power must be wielded with absolute
impartiality. As the king, he must not allow his personal emotions and
interests to influence his judgment. He who commits a crime punishable by death
must be sentenced to death, no matter his identity. That was what it meant to
be fair.
“I see... Very well. So it is, so it shall
be...”
Count Lampron left without another word.
The incident occurred that night. An attempt
was made to break Echard and a number of his fellow conspirators out of prison.
When it was discovered that the main perpetrator was Count Lampron, Sion
felt...nothing in particular. No surprise, no poignancy. Lampron had taught
Echard in his youth, and they had remained on good terms since. It was
understandable for the old man to have developed an affection for his former
pupil. Such things happened. It made sense.
Given these extenuating circumstances, there
might even be room to lessen the count’s sentence on compassionate grounds. As
he pondered the judicial ramifications of this development, a second report
came in. This one, he failed to embrace with the same insouciance. Among those
apprehended for the attempted prison break was his friend and trusted vassal,
Keithwood.
The next morning, he went down to the dungeons
and stopped in front of Keithwood’s cell. He frowned a little at the sight of
his lifelong comrade, dirt-covered and worn. His bottom lip quivered slightly,
aching from the pressure of his teeth. For the briefest of moments, the man
behind the mask seemed to surface. His eyes glistened, hinting at tears. Then,
the moment was gone, and the king had returned in all his austere dignity.
“You’ve done a fool’s deed, Keithwood...” His
voice was soft. Steady. Unfeelingly cold.
Keithwood smiled, infinitely weary. “Yes... I
suppose I have. I couldn’t stop you.” He shrugged. It lightened his expression,
but failed to hide the deep regret in his voice.
“You...disappoint me, Keithwood. I was hoping
to have you as my right hand for many more years to come...” Sion said. “Why?”
“You don’t know?”
“No. I don’t. The righteousness of the king is
at the core of this kingdom. It is what Sunkland—as a nation, as an ideal—is built upon. It is our essence. Echard must die. To
do otherwise is to let justice falter.”
He was the king. He had to be righteous. Be
the upholder of all that was fair and just.
“And if justice falters...”
He saw it again. That scene in his mind. It
never left, a constant presence in his periphery, always ready to be beheld. It
was a scene of a world soaked in the crimson light of the setting sun. Bitter
rancor, spewed by countless mouths, echoed in the air. They rained down on a
single figure, hunched alone over the guillotine. The blade fell, and so did
her head. No... He let the blade fall. He had killed the princess.
She had to die. The execution was necessary.
And right. It had to be. He had to be. Justice—his
justice—must not falter. No matter the cost.
He shook his head.
“Your Majesty...” said Keithwood. “If words
can still move you, could you please spare His Highness Echard’s life in
exchange for my own?”
Sion frowned.
“Why? What is Echard to you? You were not
close. Why do this for him?”
“Because if you kill him... If you kill your
own brother, Your Majesty, you’ll truly become—”
“I have already become the king, Keithwood. I
have a duty to rule this kingdom of Sunkland fairly and justly. That duty
requires me to put Echard to death, so I must,” said Sion. “Besides...”
A brief silence followed, broken by a soft,
steady, and unfeelingly cold voice.
“Goodbye, Keithwood. Thank you for
everything.”
Thus, Sion became a paragon of kingship. He
rid his judgment of all bias. All emotion. He forged it into a vessel of pure
righteousness, concerned only with the fairness of its decisions. So he ruled,
forever just, less man than ideal. When people came upon him, they lowered
their gazes. Whether out of reverent awe for his unshakable rectitude...or fear
for the void of humanity they saw...
Sion never married.
Humans needed company. Kings did not. He lived
his whole life alone, as if attesting the ideal that for a King of Justice,
company was an unaffordable luxury.
Tragedy has many forms, and its seeds, more
still. Sion’s life was one of them. So long as the seed remained within
Sunkland’s royal family, tragedies would continue to sprout. They might change
their shape and shift their timing, but sooner or later, they would come. The
assassination was a dire fruit, but still a fruit. It could be reaped, the
event averted, but the seed would remain...
Who could dig deep into the soil of Sunkland
and unearth its kernel of misfortune? Why, none other than our clueless
princess and her band of merry companions, of course! She and her friends were
in the very midst of confronting the swirling tendrils of catastrophe embedded
within the Sunkland royal family! Could they unroot the cursed seedling once
and for all?
“Hm... Is it just me or is this dress a little
too tight around my waist? Did they mess up the measurement?”
Good question! The seedling one, that is. Not
the measurement one.
“How terribly odd. I just had it made a few
days ago too... Oh wait. Oho ho, I know. It’s the weather here! I heard that
cold can make things shrink. That must be what’s going on here...”
It was a very, very good question.
Part 4: To the Moon-Led Morrow II Fin
To Be Continued in Part 4: To the Moon-Led Morrow
III
Where Girls Talk, Romance Blooms
“Wow... Th-This is...” Mia gasped in wonder.
She stood in a clearing—almost a plaza of
sorts—off the side of Pilgrimage Road, the wide avenue teeming with travelers
and pilgrims that would take her to Sunkland. Also in the clearing was a large
carriage, its doors adorned in golden ornamentation. It belonged to the
Greenmoons, one of the Four Houses of the Tearmoon Empire, and its splendor
matched its status.
But none of that was what Mia gasped at. In
case anyone forgot, which is admittedly a very easy thing to do, Mia was the
princess of a mighty empire. In terms of rank, she was even higher than
Esmeralda. Riding in magnificent carriages like this was, to her, a mundane
experience unworthy of remark. If anything, she wished she could scrap all
these excessively elaborate vehicles to save on operating costs, but riding in
too shabby a carriage would lead to lectures from Ludwig about how she was
damaging Tearmoon’s image on the greater political stage, so she made it a
point to take the big money-guzzlers out for a ride every so often when the
occasion called for it.
So what, exactly, caused her to gasp?
“Fascinating... You can join two of them
together?”
That’s right. Greenmoon’s horse carriages
could be parked beside each other and connected horizontally, creating a
convenient space that could be used as temporary lodging.
Even for the nobility, sleeping accommodation
when traveling between towns was normally limited to simple tents. With
carriages like these, however, the nights spent on the road would be far more
comfortable.
Previously, when she’d boarded Esmeralda’s
yacht, the Emerald Star, Mia’s interest in the vehicle had been limited. Her
carriages, however, made her eyes sparkle. After all, the yacht wasn’t all that
big, but these carriages were not only highly functional but also spacious. They were easily twice, if not more, the size of a
regular carriage!
Which...was to be expected, considering it was
two carriages joined together, but regardless, Mia was profoundly impressed. In
general, she was fond of big, spacious things. This Greenmoon carriage very
much tickled her fancy.
“Hm! The technical prowess of the Greenmoons
never fails to amaze. What a marvelous design!”
Their deep connections to foreign nations made
the Greenmoons a locus of all the latest technology. Some were of course
head-scratchingly bizarre ideas for which no one could find any practical
application, but there was never any shortage of useful inventions like the
joint carriage.
Esmeralda let out a delighted laugh as Mia
showered the vehicle with praise. “Oh, you flatter us, Miss Mia. It’s nothing
fancy. But please, do take a look inside.”
With each individual carriage already on the
larger side, the concatenated interior was incredibly roomy. Though it fell
short of rivaling a royal chamber, it was at least the size of a room in an
inn. Furthermore, the seats in the carriages were somehow retractable, as they
were nowhere to be seen. The floor had become completely flat, and a soft,
fluffy carpet had been placed on top. Mia sat down to give it the old stroke
test and giggled in delight at its pleasant texture.
“How wonderfully comfortable. There’s so much
space—I bet we can fit all the girls in here,” she said, gazing around her.
All the girls would include Esmeralda and her
maid Nina, Mia and Anne, Bel and Citrina, and Tiona and Liora. It might feel a
tad cramped to squeeze all eight of them in here, but it wasn’t impossible.
With that thought in mind...
“Say, Esmeralda. Why don’t we get everyone in
here for the night? It’s not every day we get to have a group sleepover party,
and this seems like the perfect opportunity. I’m sure it’ll be lots of fun.”
“Everyone in here? Hm...” Esmeralda frowned in
surprise at the sudden proposition and folded her arms, pondering the idea. “I
think...that’s a great idea! It does sound fun!” Her expression soon
brightened, and she nodded.
While she was for the most part the classic
daughter of a high-ranking noble and held stereotypically traditional views,
there was also an outlandishly sporty side to Esmeralda, as evidenced by her
willingness to camp on a deserted island. What’s more, the events of that
camping trip had apparently become a series of exceedingly enjoyable memories
for her.
So, it was decided that all eight girls would
gather in the carriage for the night. Cramped though it was, the occasional
brushing of elbows and knees only invited more laughter, further buoying their
mood.
“Oho ho, this really is very nice,” said Mia,
relishing the jovial air.
Granted, a certain degree of tension remained
from the knowledge that Sion’s life still hung in the balance. Addressing that
was, after all, why they’d set out on this trip to begin with. That was that
though, and this was this. If she allowed anxiety to encroach on every aspect
of her life, she’d turn into a nervous wreck. When fun times were upon her, she
figured she might as well enjoy them.
“Um, milady, are you sure this is
appropriate?” asked a hesitant Anne.
Was it? To be honest, Mia didn’t really care.
“Anne, you’re my maid-in-waiting. Why do you
even care? There’s no need to concern yourself with such matters. Right,
Esmeralda?”
Having been queried, Esmeralda regarded Anne
and said, “Quite right. You’re the proud maid-in-waiting of Miss Mia, so you
should behave proudly as well. Besides, I, um... I owe you one from before,
so... If you’re ever in trouble, feel free to ask me for help, okay?” Her voice
steadily grew more sheepish as she spoke.
“Lady Esmeralda... Thank you very much.” Anne
beamed and the atmosphere grew ever warmer.
“I must say,” said Mia after giving her maid
an approving nod, “these carriages are built like fortresses, not to mention
the guards...”
She lifted one of the armored plates and
peered out at the roaming sentries. One of them noticed her looking and grinned
back. It was a most reassuring sight.
“It’s very comforting to see such rigorous
security being provided,” she commented.
“That’s true. We also have Dion Alaia
accompanying us on this trip,” Citrina said, nodding. “No assassin will have
any luck getting at us.” The resident anti-Serpent expert smiled.
Mia smiled back, though hers was more
strained. “Yes, Dion Alaia... Having him around certainly tends to solve all
security problems, but...”
Their placid conversation was then interrupted
by a far grimmer voice. “That’s...not guaranteed.”
All eyes turned toward the speaker, Liora. The
way her face was slightly turned downward as she peered through her bangs at
Mia was a little creepy.
“Deep in the forest... Even with Dion Alaia...
You might not be safe.”
“My, is that so? The Lulu tribe must be home
to some very skilled warriors,” said Mia, recalling that troops led by Dion had
once clashed with the Lulus in a fierce battle and paid dearly for it.
Liora, however, shook her head. “No... That’s
not it,” she said in a low, hushed tone, glancing fearfully around herself
before continuing. “It’s because...deep in the forest...is where horrible
monsters roam.”
“...Huh?” It took a moment for Mia to process
what she’d heard. Slowly, her brain crunched through the logic and
realized...the conversation had taken a very worrying turn.
“My! You, you’re Rudolvon’s maid, right? Is
that a spooky story I hear? Tell me more!”
More worryingly, it caught Esmeralda hook,
line, and sinker. As evidenced during their time spent on the deserted island,
Esmeralda loved a good spook with her tales.
Uh-oh. Not good. I need to change the topic right
now, thought
Mia with growing panic.
Before she could even object, Esmeralda
glanced at her and said, “My, Miss Mia. Don’t tell me you’re scared?”
“S-Scared? M-Me? Absolutely not! H-How dare
you suggest such a thing?!” said Mia, furrowing her brows in an expression that
she hoped looked more indignant than terrified.
She wasn’t actually
scared, of course. That would be preposterous. But Anne was here, and she
couldn’t let her dear maid spend the night shuddering in fear. There was also
the pair of juniors, Bel and Citrina. As the older and more mature figure, Mia
had to be a responsible guardian, and no responsible guardian would allow young
children to be exposed to terrifying tales.
So it was that Mia resolved to fight this
great tide that was threatening to push the conversation toward spooky stories.
The psychological wellness of her dear granddaughter was on the line. She would
be her bulwark. She would defend her from—
A glance in Bel’s direction revealed a face of
excitement that rivaled Esmeralda’s. The young girl wasn’t the slightest bit scared.
Meanwhile, Liora continued to tell her story.
“This is something...that we Lulus know... A
tale we tell...from father to son...and mother to daughter... In the depths of
the Sealence Forest...there is a path that leads...to the Forbidden Forest...”
The tide came, and it swallowed Mia whole.
It was dark and dreary.
“Mmm... Hm? Where...am I?” When Mia came to,
she was standing deep in the middle of a forest. “M-My, how strange. Wasn’t
I...in the carriage a moment ago— Oh.” Her confusion quickly cleared as a
thought occurred to her. “Hah. I know what’s going on. This is a dream of when
I was running away from the revolutionary army and wandered into a forest.”
With that realization came a sense of
composure. This was no big deal. She’d been tormented by such nightmares
before, but ultimately, they were nothing more than figments of her
imagination.
“Hmph. If you think I’ll keep getting scared
by the same situation, then you’d better think again. I have survival expertise
now.”
That’s right. This very experience had driven
her to learn how to survive in a forest. The knowledge she gained had been
further enriched by her time on the deserted island. She even knew which
mushrooms were edible. In fact, this was the perfect chance to put her skills to
the test! It’d be a rehearsal of sorts, allowing her to prepare for the real
thing, should it ever come to pass. It was, in other words, time to find some
delicious mushrooms! Her spirits emboldened, she was just about to set off
when...
“Hm?”
Something didn’t feel right. She scanned her
surroundings again. Nothing but shadowy forest stretched in every direction.
She could make out nothing but the dense, dark forms of countless trees
towering over her like giants. Their branches were strangely long and their
trunks twisted in a most unnatural fashion.
“This is so...creepy.”
The sight made her hair stand on end. She
rubbed her arms, feeling the goose bumps forming on them, and continued to
regard her surroundings.
Something was definitely wrong.
That forest she’d wandered had definitely left
her feeling a profound sense of loneliness. Fear, as well, toward her captors.
Now, what she felt was only fear, and it was toward the forest itself—rather,
the thing in the forest. She didn’t know what it was,
but somehow, she felt like it was coming after her.
“What a terribly unpleasant feeling.”
Gone was the desire to take advantage of this
dream to do some adventuring. All she wanted to do now was to get out of this
forest. She began looking for the exit.
Ssss... Ssss...
She heard the sound of rustling leaves.
Snap!
A branch cracked. Then another, louder. And
another, louder still. Something was approaching.
“My... What might that be...?”
She nervously looked behind her.
“Eeeeeeeeeek!”
Utter terror exploded from her in a shrill
squeal. Trees gave way—no, were made to give way—to an
even bigger tree. A gigantic one with two massive branches that it raised like
arms before charging forward. A huge tree monster was coming after her!
“Eeeeeeek!”
She screamed and ran for dear life. Down a
narrow trail through the woods she dashed, half-stumbling as she tried to dodge
thick, twisting roots which stuck out in hazardous angles that seemed
near-intentional. Fighting her way through brushes and thickets, she rushed to
get out of the forest.
“Wait, which way is out?!” she screamed as she
ran.
No answer was forthcoming. Meanwhile, the
monster drew ever closer. A glance backward revealed a hole on its trunk that
had opened like a giant maw. It was big enough to swallow her whole!
“Gaaaaaaaah! It’s too fast! I can’t get away!
Noooooo!”
Just as she was about to give up, something
split the air in front of her. An arrow shot past her with a sharp shwiiick and struck the monster with a loud thud.
“Your Highness... This way!”
“L-Liora?! What are you doing here?”
Up ahead, hidden in the shadow of a tree, was
the figure of Liora with bow in hand. Out of breath and utterly bewildered, Mia
shambled as quickly as she could toward her.
“Liora, wh-what in the moons is that thing?”
“It is...the Thing... It lives in the Sealence
Forest... Don’t let it catch you...or bad things will happen...”
“Wh-What kind of bad things?”
“Very, very...bad things.”
This very unhelpful repetition only added fuel
to the raging fire that was Mia’s fear-afflicted imagination.
“You need to get away...now,” said Liora as she
nocked another arrow.
“But...what about you?”
“I’ll be fine... Just go... Now!”
“B-But...”
At Liora’s urgent instruction, Mia...found
herself conflicted. Was it okay for her to run off on her own? Or should she
force Liora to come with her, even if she had to drag her away?
“To run or not to run, that is the
question...”
So troubled was she by this problem that she
began pondering it in earnest. She pondered and pondered, working her brain so
hard that her head began to ache. She kept pondering. Her vision began to swim.
Just when she thought she couldn’t ponder any more...
“Your Highness... Your Highness...”
Mia felt her body being shaken. She opened her
eyes.
“M-My... I must have fallen asleep.”
“Was the story about the forest
guardian...boring?”
She turned to find a crestfallen Liora. “Huh?
N-No, it uh...”
Forced to think quickly, she immediately
recalled the spooky story Liora just told. As a proficient practitioner of
Anne’s patented sleep-learning method, Mia could remember the things she heard
while asleep.
“It was interesting, actually. Yes, very
interesting...”
What she wanted to say was, “Moons, it
literally gave me nightmares! What were you thinking, telling spooky stories at
night?!” However, Liora did show up to save her in said nightmare, so she
couldn’t be too hard on the girl. More importantly, a quick glance revealed
that nobody else seemed the slightest bit scared. Judging by the abundant
smiles and laughter, they’d all enjoyed the story. She didn’t dare be the sole
spoilsport.
“I enjoyed it a great deal.”
Mia was no maverick; she was a devoted
fitter-inner. If everyone was singing the story’s praises, then she would too!
But this isn’t good. Apparently, if someone tells
a spooky story around me while I’m dozing off, I’ll end up having a nightmare
about it! I need to steer this conversation away from scary stuff right away!
They could tell any other story.
As long as it wasn’t scary, she could nod off without it worming its way into
her dream. Probably. In any case, she needed to perform emergency conversation
surgery!
How, though?
She considered her options. And considered.
And considered...
Zzz...
“Ah!” She woke with a start. “Moons, that was
close. I almost dozed off again...” she muttered as she gave her cheeks a quick
slap. With it came a flash of inspiration.
Oh, I know! Everyone clearly likes spooky
stories, but I bet they like romantic stories more! Nothing gets noble girls
more excited than talking about girlfriends and boyfriends! In fact, I can just
talk about my relationship with Abel. Won’t that stop the conversation from
turning toward scary stuff?
“Oho, that was quite the story, maid of
Rudolvon, but you’ve still got some ways to go. Next, let me show you how it’s
done,” said an eager Esmeralda.
Before she could begin, Mia held up a hand to
stop her. “Actually, everyone, I have a suggestion. Spooky stories are well and
good, but as gentlewomen, I think we should talk about topics that are
more...productive.”
“Hm?” Esmeralda frowned in puzzlement. “What’s
a productive topic for a gentlewoman?”
Mia smiled. “Why... Love, of course! And
relationships! Would anyone like to hear some stories about the dates I went on
with Prince Abel?” she said, emphasizing the “Prince.”
“My! I’d love to!”
She, too, managed to get Esmeralda hook, line,
and sinker.
Not that I’m complaining, but it’s really easy to
bait Esmeralda, isn’t it? She bites at anything.
Said the princess you could lure with a cube
of sugar on a string. In terms of biting at things, Mia was just as much a
sucker for sweets. Maybe it ran in the blood or something.
“I want to know too, Miss Mia!” Bel was
equally interested. “How were your dates with Grand— Prince Abel?”
The girl’s tastes usually skewed more toward
Sion and Keithwood, but that didn’t stop her from leaping at the chance to hear
about the romance between Grandpa Abel and her esteemed grandmother. Maniabel
was no picky eater; she consumed a balanced diet of gossip.
“Oho ho. Well, we sometimes head out to town
to go window shopping, but mostly, we go for long rides on horseback.”
Thus, Mia began to passionately describe her
horseback dates with Abel in extreme detail.
“When we’re riding beside each other, we
sometimes go on quick races. The time we tried to beat each other to the shore
of Noelige Lake was a lot of fun. The wind you feel on horseback when you’re
close to the lake... It’s sublime.”
Riding alongside Abel, sharing his laughter
while the lake breeze grazed her cheeks... Scene after scene of pure bliss
scrolled through her mind, causing a rather unseemly grin to spread across her
lips.
“When we sit together on one horse—oh, let me
tell you!—that’s when I get his heart really pounding.
Abel might look like he’s fooling around all the time, but deep down, he’s
actually pretty straitlaced. I bet he’s never ridden tandem with a girl before,
judging by how nervous he gets. You can tell right away. He goes stiff from
head to toe. Of course, that only makes him more adorable.”
For the record, if questioned about the same
experience, Abel would have given the exact same answer, except with the names
reversed. Probably something along the lines of “Mia just sat there like a
statue the whole time. I guess she’s a lot more innocent than she appears.”
When you gaze into the abyss, the person you
were making fun of gazes right back at you.
“I see, I see,” said Bel with the tone of a
scholar engaging in academic discourse. “Do you kiss on horseback too? Or do
you get down first?”
She dropped that bombshell of a question with
the straightest of faces.
“K-K-Kiss?! W-We’d never do something so
immodest! It’s way too early for that! Right, Rina?”
Citrina, who’d been content to just listen and
smile, hesitated at this sudden question.
“Uh...” She tilted her head, lips pursed in
thought. Then, with a nod of newfound insight, she said, “That’s right, Bel.
It’d be improper to do so. Kissing is for after you get married, so if any
strange men try to convince you otherwise, make sure you don’t listen to them.
Just walk away, okay?”
She promptly educated Bel in matters of
feminine modesty so she’d grow up to be a proper maiden.
“Really?” Bel frowned in surprise. “But I
heard that my grandmother’s first time was—” She paused, cutting herself off.
“Never mind. I probably remembered wrong.”
Bel then nodded in the same manner as Citrina.
That look of newfound insight on her granddaughter’s face bugged Mia a little,
but she pushed it aside to continue her story.
“Anyway, as I was saying... We rarely ever
leave the island, so someday, I’d like to go somewhere far with just the two of
us. We’ll ride and ride across an endless field of grass... What a wonderful
date that would be,” said Mia, continuing to expound on her romantic
excursions.
Tiona listened with a gentle expression. At a
certain point, however, she frowned as a thought occurred to her. “But in that
case, make sure to be very careful, Your Highness.”
“Huh? Be careful of what?”
“The abandoned village that must never be
entered. It’s a very scary place. Haven’t you heard of it?”
“The...what?” Mia frowned, not sure whether
she wanted to know the answer.
“It’s pretty well-known in the Rudolvon
domain. Apparently, somewhere out there is an empty village where no one lives,
and if you accidentally wander in...”
And so, due to Tiona’s intervention, the
conversation segued back to spooky stories with upsetting swiftness.
Wh-What the— How did she do that? Augh, I let my
guard down for one second, and this is what happens!
With everyone’s attention already trained on
Tiona, it was too late to stop her. Again, Mia didn’t want to be a party pooper.
But it’s okay. I already know how to deal with
this, and the solution is simple. I just have to make sure I don’t doze off.
After all, if I don’t sleep, I can’t have nightmares. All right, let’s do this!
It’s time to stay awake!
Her mental pep talk proved effective, giving
her the energy she needed to keep herself alert. She did not sleep, nor did she
suffer any nightmares. Instead, she ended up listening to Tiona’s spooky story
from beginning to end while fully awake.
After enduring every last spooky detail of
Tiona’s story about the abandoned village...
“Oho ho ho, not bad, Miss Tiona. Not bad at
all. I commend your performance,” said Esmeralda with an expression of profound
satisfaction.
It delighted her to add a new item to her
stock of spooky stories. Doubtlessly, she intended to relay this fresh tale to
her tea buddies.
“Thank you very much,” replied Tiona, lowering
her head before turning to Mia and adding, “And that’s why you should be
cautious when you go on long rides, Your Highness. Do be careful, okay?”
The worry on her face was serious and sincere.
Mia, for her part, was feeling more along the
lines of “Moons, would you all stop it with the spooky stories already?!”
Seeing that Tiona had meant for it to be a cautionary tale, however, forced her
to swallow her grievance. After all, she couldn’t fault Tiona for being
concerned for her safety.
“V-Very well. That was a...most fascinating
story. If I ever come across an abandoned village like that during my rides,
I’ll have to be careful...” said Mia, trying hard not to whimper.
Something’s not right...
She found herself bewildered by the course of
events.
We were supposed to be talking about love and
relationships... So how come I ended up suffering through another scary story?
I don’t get it. This isn’t fair at all.
Just then, Bel spoke up. “Oh, by the way, Miss
Mia, there’s something I wanted to ask you.”
“Oh? What is it?”
“I know you danced with Prince Sion a few
times, so... I was wondering what it was like. Is he a good dancer?”
“Hm... You would wonder,
wouldn’t you?” murmured Mia, recalling Bel’s obsession with Sion. “His dancing,
huh...?” She folded her arms and grumbled in thought to herself for a bit
before answering. “His dancing...is the kind that drives you up the wall. It
doesn’t matter how hard the routine is. He always does it perfectly. And makes
it look like he’s enjoying it, to boot. Not only can he meet all my
expectations, he sometimes surpasses them. On top of that, he pays enough
attention to my steps to help improve the quality of my performance too. It’s
the kind of dance where, in the midst of it, it feels magical...but once you’re
done, you want to punch something.”
There you have it. The expert opinion of Mia,
professional dance critic. But wait! She wasn’t done!
“In comparison, dancing with Abel is just pure
bliss. His dancing is the kind that makes you want to root for him because of
how hard he always tries. Every time he dances, he gets a little better. Seeing
his improvement always puts a smile on my face.”
“I see, I see... So that’s how Grand— Prince
Abel dances. It’s exactly how I imagined,” said Bel, nodding to herself.
“There’s also Sapphias, I guess. He’s a lot
better at dancing than he seems. I’ve seen him at dance parties before, and
well, his fiancée has clearly whipped him into shape.”
“That, I agree with,” said Esmeralda. “He’s
very conscious of his partner. He always seems so clueless, so it’s quite the
shock to see how considerate a dancer he is.”
“On that note, Bel, you should be careful of Keithwood,”
added Mia. “He’s very proficient on the dance floor, but there’s something
about his dancing that feels...impersonal. Like he’s just going through the
motions. I get the feeling that he’s been around the block a few times.”
Citrina nodded her agreement. “That’s right,
Bel. Men who are womanizers might seem like really nice people at first, so you
need to be very careful,” she said with deeply furrowed brows.
“I feel like Keithwood the Loyal should be
pretty safe to be around...but okay, I’ll be careful.” Despite her qualms about
his characterization, Bel accepted the advice.
“But at the end of the day,” Mia continued,
“the most important thing is your own dance skill. I taught you the Dance of
Moonlight, right? Just keep practicing the basic motions of that routine, and
you’ll naturally get better.”
“Uh... You mean like this, right?” Bel wiggled
her arms, presumably in an attempt to reproduce the said motions. It
was...questionably faithful.
“You know, Bel... You have a habit of learning
things really sloppily, and you should really do something about it.” Mia
sighed. “Look, I’m going to show you again. You have to start with the
fingertips, like this.”
She’d barely begun her demonstration when
Citrina suddenly said, “By the way, Your Highness, have you heard of the story
about the shadow that does a creepy dance?”
“The...shadow that does a creepy dance? I
don’t think so.”
At first, Mia gave Citrina a puzzled look.
Then, it hit her. The conversation was yet again heading in a dangerous
direction.
“R-Rina, might that be a story of the spooky
sort?”
“They call it the boogie-boogie...”
Mia arched an eyebrow. “The ‘boogie-boogie’?
It doesn’t sound very scary...”
Citrina smiled gently. “It’s not scary at
all.”
So, she proceeded to tell the tale about how
one day, when she was riding in a carriage, she looked out into a field, and in
the middle of it...was a spooky dancing shadow!
It was definitely
scary.
“—Highness? Your Highness?”
“M-Mmm...” Mia groaned, feeling her body being
shaken. Slowly, she opened her eyes. The worried face of Anne appeared in view.
“Wh-Where am I... Hm?”
She looked around to find herself inside a
carriage. Beside her, breaths still peaceful with slumber, was Esmeralda.
Curled into a ball at her feet was Bel, who lay beside her friend, Citrina.
Both young girls were asleep, though the latter in a far more seemly manner.
“Oh... I must have dozed off early again. That
must mean it was all a dream... Hm?”
Mia frowned. All of what?
The particulars escaped her. She couldn’t recall what Citrina’s story had been
about, though she felt like it had been very, very scary.
Anne smiled at her. “Are you all right,
milady? You looked very restless. Were you having a nightmare?”
“Yes, I suppose, although I can’t seem to
remember what it was about. I just know it was very scary. Something about a
shadow that does a creepy dance...”
“A creepy dance? Hmm... You mean...”
It was then that Mia realized something
disturbing. Anne’s voice...wasn’t right. It sounded...scary, somehow.
“...Like this?”
“Eeeeeeek!”
Mia screamed before she even looked, but she
looked nonetheless. There, before her, was Anne doing the dance! The creepy
dance! The—
Actually, it just looked sort of weird. Not
really creepy.
“U-Um, Anne? What...is that supposed to be?”
“Oh, it’s the Dance of Moonlight that you
taught us last night. I think it went something like this.”
Anne held her arms and legs at decidedly odd
angles and wiggled them. The effect was so bizarre, Mia couldn’t help but burst
out in laughter.
“Oh, Anne. That’s not it,” she said, giggling
through the words. “That won’t do at all. You’ll probably be looking after my
children in the future, so I’ll have to teach you properly some day.”
“Hmm? Who’s teaching what now?” asked
Esmeralda, who’d woken up and was regarding them with intense curiosity.
“Oh, it’s, uh, nothing important. Don’t worry
about it.”
“My! Miss Mia! Are you going to keep something
from your best friend?” Esmeralda said, her expression
visibly hurt.
“No, I was just talking about teaching Anne to
dance...”
“My! That sounds delightful! You must allow me
to partake in this as well!”
She really does bite at
anything, doesn’t she? You don’t even need a hook.
Mia shook her head. Soon after, however, she was overcome by a wave of
sentimentalism.
This gathering before her, she realized, was
something very special. Here was a girl who’d once betrayed Mia, fleeing the
empire with her clan and kin. A girl she thought she’d never forgive, much less
have any desire to associate with again. Behind her were two more girls, Tiona
and Liora, whom Mia had wanted to stay far away from—the farther the better.
Moreover, there was Citrina who, despite having had no direct contact with Mia,
was probably deeply involved in her eventual death. Finally, snoozing ever so
comfortably to her side was Bel, who’d come from a future that had already
fallen into ruin.
What an extraordinary group of members to be
going on a trip with.
They’d been her hated enemies. Her objects of
gall and wormwood. And she’d just spent a night with them, making merry with
fanciful tales of spooks and spirits. It was the most surreal of situations, as
marvelous as it was bizarre. There was a dreamlike wonder to the atmosphere.
Perhaps that was why she felt...a tad more charitable than usual.
“All right then. Have it your way, Esmeralda.
When the time comes, you can join us. In fact, we should invite Tiona and Liora
as well. Rina too. We can set up something like a dance society with everyone.”
It sounded like great fun. So much so that the
very act of imagining it put a grin on her lips. She lowered her head to hide
her private glee.
Hm, in that case, we’ll all need dance partners.
I’ll ask Abel to come, of course, but probably Keithwood too. He seems like the
kind of guy who can handle any dance we throw at him. Sapphias is another
decent choice. And Sion...
She thought of the crown prince of Sunkland
and his infuriatingly savvy dancing, meeting every pivoting call with a
perfect, swiveling answer.
It...would be best if he were there. Everyone
would have a better time. She sighed inwardly. I
guess I have no choice. I’ll have to invite him too. Which means...
She looked back up, her gaze now distant, but
focused. Somewhere far, far away, in the direction she now looked, was Sion...
I have to stop this assassination... So that
everyone can dance to their hearts’ content...
Thus continued Mia and her friends on their
journey toward Sunkland. As for what awaited her there... She—and everyone
else—would simply have to wait to find out.
Mia’s Diary —The Gastronome’s Guide to Tearmoon—
The Seventeenth Day of the Eighth Month
I had a pot of stewed forest delights cooked
for me by Tiona’s maid, Liora. Apparently, it’s a fusion of food traditionally
made by Rudolvon’s farmers with the Lulu Tribe’s cuisine. It had some hare meat
that had been prepared a few days ago (Liora apparently hunted it herself.
Hiring a Lulu for an attendant sounds like a pretty good way to make sure I
never go hungry in a famine. Mental note: maybe I need to discuss this with the
Lulu chief later?) It also had some thinly sliced jerky and a bunch of
vegetables that were roughly chopped up.
I was told that there’s no hard-and-fast rule
about what vegetables to put in. What matters is using fresh ones that you just
got. A pot filled with vegetables that were just bought from a nearby village
doesn’t make for a very refined flavor, but there’s a wonderfully rustic appeal
to it.
The way the thick flavor of hare mixed with
all the other ingredients imparted a richness to the stew that really elevated
it. I very much enjoyed the pot of forest delights.
Highly recommended ✰x5
The Eighteenth Day of the Eighth Month
I had a pot of exquisite seafood stew cooked
for me by Esmeralda’s maid, Nina. Apparently, she took yesterday’s stew from
the Rudolvons as some sort of challenge. To be clear, we brought Greenmoon
chefs with us on the trip, and they’ve been cooking for us every day. Somehow,
though, she got it into her head that it was important for it to be cooked by a
maid, so she insisted on having Nina do it. I swear, sometimes, Esmeralda can
be such a handful.
Nina’s cooking, though! That was superb as
always. In fact, I now realize how much of a handicap she was working with on
the deserted island. With a proper selection of ingredients, her cooking is on
another level. She started with a soup base that had spices from Greenmoon’s
special stock. Then, she put in dried seafood. Finally, she added some fluffy,
spongy things made from flour, which sucked up a lot of the soup. Eating them
was interesting. You have to roll them around on your tongue and breathe out
because they’re steaming hot, but when you bite in and the juices flow, it’s
indescribable—a unique type of deliciousness I’ve never experienced before.
Also, the texture of dried shellfish resembled
mushrooms, which made them excellent.
I felt like I got a taste of some sort of
secret Greenmoon recipe passed down through the generations. It was absolutely
brilliant.
Highly recommended ✰x5
The Nineteenth Day of the Eighth Month
Is it just me, or is a good eighty percent of
my diary about food? I sit down to write, and before I know it, I’m writing
about food. It just keeps happening, and I cannot for the life of me figure out
why. I’m really starting to think I might be afflicted by some sort of curse.
Anyway, today, I’m going to be serious and
write a proper entry.
I went on an inspection of the Princess Guard
today. They’re always working hard to keep me safe, so it’s important for me to
know how they’re going about their duties. After all, they’re my shield. When
I’m in a pinch, they’re the ones I rely on to protect me. It’s very much
necessary to ensure they have a pleasant work environment and their morale is
high.
So, I had them show me their horses and
equipment. When they were briefing me on their maintenance procedures, I
suddenly started wondering if they were eating well. For soldiers, good food is
crucial for good morale. I figured it’d be a good chance to see what they were
eating.
It was not because I smelled something tasty,
in case anyone’s wondering.
Anyway, I ended up having some of their food,
and I couldn’t believe it! It’s a thing called battlefield stew, and it’s
apparently a favorite of many soldiers. I’d describe it as looking like a form
of pumpkin stew. It was yellow and creamy, and when I had a sip, I was shocked
by how spicy it was.
Bel was with me, so she had some too, and she
started tearing up with a single sip. It might have been a bit too spicy for
children, but not for me. I could taste the complex flavors underneath the
spiciness.
The vegetables in the stew had been in there
for a long time, so they were really soft. The carrots almost melted in my
mouth. The fullmoon onions basically had already dissolved in the pot, but that
didn’t make them any less important! They added complexity to the stew and
contributed to its overall richness.
Apparently, it was great for dipping bread
into, so I tried it. That lessened the spiciness and brought out the other
flavors more.
If the soldiers are eating things like this
every day, there can’t possibly be any problems with their morale, right? If
anything, it was sort of upsetting that they were eating such good food, and
I’d never gotten to try it before.
It was a good reminder, though, of the fact
that there are still so many delicious foods in this world that I’m not aware
of.
Wait... Is it just me or am I writing about
food again?
What an absolutely perplexing phenomenon...
Afterword
Hello, I’m Mochitsuki, and it’s good to see
you again.
In this volume, Mia’s crew go on a trip to the
Kingdom of Sunkland, which is a place whose name has been showing up in the
story since the first volume. What new cuisines await her there? Hm? What was
that, you say? I’m missing the point?
Anyway, on a separate note, I had a dream the
other day. I dreamt that I went to an abandoned theme park. It was built with
the theme of European castles, and lots of big castles had been relocated
there. Some of them stood on elevated ground and looked like mountain
fortresses. It was truly the kind of place I dream of going to.
One day, I’d like to build a theme park like
that.
While roaming around in my dream, I was like,
“I can use this as a reference for Tearmoon! I need to come back here again! I
didn’t think they’d actually let me in. This is going to make it so much easier
to write about castles! Yay!”
I regret not taking a better look at the
castle interiors while I had the chance...
Mia: “Ah... Yes, those kinds of dreams are
pretty common. I dreamt of a castle the other day too.”
Mochitsuki: “Oh? A castle, you say? But
Princess Mia, you live in a castle, so they’re not anything special to you,
right? Wait... Don’t tell me it was one of those classic ‘castle made of candy’
dreams?”
Mia: “I wish. In that case, I’d just eat it
without a second thought. The castle I dreamed of was an abandoned one with
mushrooms growing out of it in all sorts of places!”
Mochitsuki: “No way!”
Mia: “Why couldn’t it have been a castle
filled with cream? I mean, the mushrooms looked delicious, but they were still
mushrooms, so I couldn’t eat them raw. I wanted to ask someone to cook them for
me, but there was nobody around...”
Mochitsuki: “ I see. Well, I guess seeing
things you want to eat and not being able to eat them is a staple of dreams.
Having the obstacle to eating them be the fact that they have to be cooked
feels pretty rare though.”
Mia: “It made me so sad that I’m going to
start studying how to make mushroom cuisine. I’m serious about this!”
And that was how Mia hardened a new resolve. A
dubiously valuable one, but a new resolve nonetheless.
Now, some words of appreciation.
Thank you to Gilse for the adorable
illustrations. The cover art of Mia dancing is so much fun! Thank you very
much!
Thank you to my editor, F. Your valuable critique
and thoughtful comments are very much appreciated. They encourage me to keep
writing.
To my family, thank you for your ongoing
support. I’m going to continue doing this for a little longer.
Finally, to all the readers who picked up this book, thanks to your support, it looks like we’ll be able to keep publishing these stories. I hope you’ll keep reading both these books and the manga. Thank you all again.
Bonus Short Story
Princess Mia’s Project X —The Quest for the Infinity Cake—
“Hnnngh...”
A groan was heard from a room in the Whitemoon
Palace. Mia, having returned from Perujin, lay in her luxurious bed, trying in
vain to collect her thoughts.
“This...is a tough problem...”
She turned onto her side, then the other side.
Still, her thoughts refused to be collected. Nevertheless, she kept trying, and
trying...and trying...and...
She gasped and hastily slapped her cheeks a
few times in an attempt to drive off the slumber that had almost taken her.
“Ugh, this is no good. I need to think of something, or this brilliant idea I
just had will go to waste.”
Inspiration had struck during her
eat-till-you-drop tour of Perujin cuisine. What if, she’d thought, she started
a faculty of food in Mia Academy where they’d study, well, food? Then, when Anne
had made castillas for her, the idea had evolved further.
“Those castillas were so good, and they didn’t
even need normal wheat. Also, they apparently only had a little bit of sugar in
them... Who knew such cakes could be made?”
Their existence was like a ray of hope.
“Tatiana keeps telling me that I’ll get sick
if I’m eating sweets all the time because too much sugar is bad for me...but if
there are cakes like that, then...”
Mia, you see, had a dream. She dreamed of one
day living in a cake castle, where she’d spend every day eating nothing but
cakes. There would be cakes for breakfast, cakes for lunch, cakes after her
noontime nap, and cakes for supper. If she could somehow do this without
ruining her health, then surely, she’d have discovered heaven on earth.
“The head chef said even his vegetable cakes
had to be eaten in moderation, but what if, instead of wheat and sugar, they
could be made with healthy ingredients? Then my dream of eating only cakes
every day might actually come true!”
Said heaven, she now realized, might actually
exist on said earth! And it was all thanks to Anne. Her invaluable efforts in
creating the wheatless, sugarless castilla had smashed Mia’s preconceived
notions of what cakes could be, opening her eyes to a whole new world of
possibilities.
“What we need right now is research. Anne
couldn’t have made such a brilliant castilla without coming to Perujin, where
they spend a lot of time researching food. Therefore, the first step toward
making my dream come true should be setting up a specialized faculty in my
academy to study cooking.”
Surely, there were still many ingredients out
there, spread throughout the many nations in the continent, that Mia did not
know about. There they lay, dormant and untapped. If she could somehow harness
their yet-unknown properties, perhaps she could create the ultimate cake—a cake
that one could eat every day to their heart’s content, and then some.
“Hmm... A project to develop a cake that can
be eaten all the time... Indefinitely and infinitely... Hm. I think I’ll call
it the Infinity Cake Project.” She nodded to herself, enjoying the ring of the
name. Soon, however, a frown clouded her expression. “But wait... There’s a
problem. How am I supposed to get people on board with this project? ‘Go work your
butts off researching cuisines so I can eat cake all day’ isn’t exactly the
greatest of sales pitches.”
Ludwig was certainly going to have none of it.
Anne would probably give her a good scolding too. Most importantly, she doubted
she could convince the head chef, who was a big proponent of eating balanced
meals. The thought of presenting her questionable logic to that bear of a man
was a tad too daunting...
“Which means... What I call the project will
be pretty important, so I need to be careful. I definitely need to keep ‘cake’
out of the name. ‘Infinity’ seems risky too. If I leave it in, someone like
Ludwig might catch on... Instead of ‘infinity,’ maybe it should be something
like... X. Yes, that’s it! I’ll call it Project X!”
At last, in a moment of triumph, she thought
of the perfect name.
“Granted, the project does have some merits. The ultimate goal might be sort of
questionable, but to get there, we’ll have to research the cuisines of other
nations, and that can’t be a bad thing. For now, the project will aim to
improve our basic cooking techniques. It’ll be a long road, but as long as the
ultimate cake exists at the end of that road, it’s okay. This is just the first
step.”
With her mind made up, she promptly sent a
letter off to the academy’s headmaster, Galv.
“Next... I’ll also need his help,”
she murmured, thinking of the head chef. “He’s the one who invented the
vegetable cake, after all. If I want a new cake, his skills will be crucial.”
The head chef of the imperial court, Musta
Waggman, was a person she definitely needed to recruit. Shortly after speaking
to him, however, she turned her attention to something that promptly ousted
everything else from her mind.
“Right, then. I think it’s time I gave the
Chronicles a quick peek.”
What she discovered in it...was a little
something called the assassination of Sion Sol Sunkland.
That day, Balthazar Brandt was visiting Saint
Mia Academy. As an official of the Scarlet Moon Ministry, which oversaw local
governance within the empire, he considered it his job to eradicate the plague
of anti-agriculturalism that had infested the empire. It was, however, a doozy
of a job, possibly the biggest he’d had in years, and he’d need every help he
could get. To that end, he considered it imperative to maintain as close a
coordination with Saint Mia Academy as possible. There were of course some
people in the Scarlet Moon Ministry who were skeptical of the academy, but,
well, Balthazar had neither the time nor desire to care about their opinions.
“Plus, this job is a request from an old,
important friend. It’s worth breaking a leg or two.”
Though he framed it as a favor for his friend,
deep down, he was also enjoying the sense of fulfillment that came with the
work he was currently doing.
As he stepped with familiar steps into the
headmaster’s office, however, he arched an eyebrow. His old master, the
renowned wiseman Galv, was staring at a parchment with a deep frown.
“What seems to be the matter, O wise master
Galv?”
“Ah...” Galv slowly looked up from the
parchment. “You have come, O wise pupil Balthazar.”
What humor there was in his phrasing was
drowned out by a deep sigh. The creases across his brow deepened.
“Is something wrong?” asked Balthazar,
surprised by this rare display of frustration from his old master. “I didn’t
think there would be a problem that could trouble the likes of you.”
“It’s not a problem,”
Galv answered. “It’s frustration. I’m lamenting the shallowness of my own
wisdom.”
He dropped the parchment onto the desk and
slid it toward Balthazar.
“This is...”
It turned out to be a letter, and the one
who’d penned it was none other than the person who’d appointed Galv to the role
of headmaster.
“A letter from Her Highness? I see... So she
wants a faculty to research foreign cuisines.” Balthazar drew a pensive breath.
“Fascinating. That’s not something I’ve ever considered. Now that I think about
it though, that could indeed be useful when welcoming foreign envoys.”
When foreign envoys came to Tearmoon, it was
customary to treat them to Tearmoon cuisine. However, Mia was calling into
question the wisdom of this practice.
“For those weary from travel, the culinary
welcome they would most appreciate is surely not the foreign cuisine of
Tearmoon but the flavors of their native land. If even a single dish tastes
like home, it will likely do wonders for their mood, which will in turn
facilitate productive negotiation,” said Balthazar, his head lowered in
thought. “That’s about as much as I can fathom in terms of Her Highness’s intentions.”
Even within the empire, culinary habits varied
slightly from domain to domain, and it was his job as an official of the
Scarlet Moon Ministry to visit those domains. He’d have no business working
there if he couldn’t enjoy those differences in reception. Still, he’d be lying
if he hadn’t felt the occasional yearning during his travels for a dish from
his hometown.
“The broadness of her viewpoint, the way she
considers issues from the perspective of others... It is but another reminder
that she is truly the Great Sage of the Empire.”
Balthazar slowly looked back up to find Galv
gazing quietly at the letter. “Am I wrong in some way?”
“No, you’re not wrong... I thought the same as
you at first. Food and crops are inextricably linked, so if Mia Academy, as an
educational institution, is going to preach the importance of agriculture, then
it’s reasonable to start a program for learning how to cook. Perhaps even
necessary. But the question is... Is that all?”
“What do you mean, master? Does this letter
contain some hidden meaning not apparent to me?”
Galv pointed at a line in the letter.
Balthazar eyed it. “Project X...? What is this supposed to mean?”
“Think about it, Balthazar. Her Highness is a
woman whose mind works on many levels. Every action she takes often has many
layers of meaning to it. Shouldn’t we assume, then, that this Project X is also
more than meets the eye? That there’s more to the name...”
“X... What could it mean? An initial? An
acronym? I’m not sure.”
“It had been gnawing at my mind until some
time ago, while pondering it, an answer suddenly occurred to me...and it left
me speechless.”
“You figured it out? What’s the answer?”
Balthazar leaned forward, intrigued by the riddle.
Galv leaned back, pleased by the reaction. “X
represents a cross,” he explained, putting one finger across another to
illustrate his point. “In other words, an intersection of two things. The next
question is naturally, what two things? Let’s assume one is Mia Academy. What
could the other be?”
He paused for dramatic effect before
continuing.
“Something, perhaps, with influence over
foreign affairs and education. Something like...the House of Greenmoon. I
believe this is Her Highness asking us to mend relations with the Greenmoons.”
The corner of his lip turned up ever so smugly
as he finished his speech. Balthazar, blindsided by both the unexpected
interpretation and the confidence with which it was delivered, was left
dumbfounded. But only for a second. His thoughts quickly resumed their usual
activity.
“I see... It’s true that relations between the
House of Greenmoon and Mia Academy remain frigid. There’s been no communication
whatsoever. That was careless of us...”
Duke Greenmoon and his house held significant
sway over academia. Their proud Etoiline, Esmeralda, had tried to throw a
wrench into the works during Mia Academy’s inception. Her sabotage had resulted
in a number of lecturers pulling out of the arrangement, leaving the academy
with a staffing crisis. Fortunately, thanks to Galv’s efforts, the damage was
mostly mitigated, but the incident had resulted in an estrangement between the
academy and the Greenmoons that continued to this day.
Circumstances, however, had changed.
According to Ludwig, the prime perpetrator of
the incident, Esmeralda, was once again on good terms with Mia. If anything,
after the new oath sworn in the winter, they were even closer than before.
Despite these developments, Saint Mia Academy and the House of Greenmoon
remained divorced, creating a significant obstacle to hiring talented lecturers
from Tearmoon. That was detrimental to both the academy and its students.
“If we’re going to research foreign cuisines,”
Balthazar said musingly, “not making use of Greenmoon’s diplomatic know-how
would be absurd. We could actively request their help, and in doing so, give
them a chance to make amends and clear their name, ultimately allowing us to
resume a cooperative arrangement...”
“Correct. What you previously suggested is
goal number one. Repairing relations with the Greenmoons is goal number two.
Cross these two goals, and you get...Project X. The meaning, the mission, her
instructions to us—it’s all in the name.”
Though technically conjecture, Galv’s logic
was highly convincing.
“I have no words...” Balthazar let out an
impassioned sigh. “All I can say is that like the moon in the sky, the radiant
wisdom of Her Highness never falters.”
Galv did not join in the Mia-praising.
Instead, his gaze grew sharper. “It seems...Her Highness is serious about
this.”
“About what?”
Galv stroked his beard pensively. “Serious
about...making Saint Mia Academy not only the number one school in Tearmoon,
but the best in the continent. She intends for us to represent the pinnacle of
education, on par with Saint-Noel.”
Goosebumps formed on Balthazar’s arms.
The best in the business. The greatest in the
continent. Many an educational facility had been built with such goals in mind.
Every kingdom and country could rattle off a list of their schools that had
hoisted such banners during their inception. None had ever succeeded.
But this time, it was Mia doing the building,
and she was serious.
“Then, with the prestige and influence that
would garner us, she intends to revolutionize Tearmoon’s attitude toward
agriculture. That is what I have surmised from this letter,” concluded Galv.
“I see. So it’s a play for clout...”
What Mia needed was perceived authority. She
had things to say, but she needed them to not be spoken through the mouths of
lecturers in some second-rate school cobbled together by a princess on a whim,
but declared by professors in one of the most prominent teaching institutions
in the continent with the backing of Tearmoon’s entire academia. The academy
was going to be the symbol and vanguard of an ideological revolution in
agricultural attitudes. When it spoke, people needed to listen. Her goal was to
make sure they did.
“And that, dear Balthazar, is my dilemma.”
The odd comment pulled Balthazar out of his
thoughts. “Your dilemma? What dilemma? This is one of the most worthwhile
projects I’ve ever heard of. What could possibly be holding you back?”
Galv gave him a playful wink. “My dilemma...is
that I was thinking of retiring in a year or two to clear the way for younger
talent, but how can I do so with something so exciting on the horizon?”
Balthazar stared at his master for a second,
then rolled his eyes and sighed.
Meanwhile... Let’s take a look at what the
other vital piece of Mia’s Infinity Cake project—aka Project X—was doing.
“Learning to cook in school, huh...” Musta
Waggman murmured as he mulled over the idea Mia presented to him earlier.
“Cooking isn’t really an academic subject, though...”
Cooking was a skill. A trade. The world of
cooking was one of craftsmen. People who sought masters to apprentice
themselves and leeched off their expertise until they were sufficiently skilled
to strike out on their own. These were people who lived and died by their
tongue—their tool and weapon that they would hone to perfection. The idea of
being taught—in a school, at that—was alien. It didn’t
feel right.
Given this context, it was therefore
understandable for Musta’s enthusiasm for the idea to be lacking. Moreover, Mia
hadn’t asked for any specific help. She’d simply mentioned that she might come
to him for advice somewhere down the line. So, he figured he’d think about it
when the time came, and put the matter out of his mind.
Until some time later, when the matter invited
itself back in.
“What am I looking at...? Are these even
bread?” Musta Waggman’s disgusted voice echoed through the wide kitchen of the
Whitemoon Palace.
“Head chef, um...” The younger cook working
under him wore a deep frown. Before them were a number of different breads.
Musta sampled one of them and let out a deep
sigh. “I assume these are all failed attempts?”
The issue was their dry, crumbly texture. They
were also stiff and fairly bland, but the biggest problem was definitely their
poor mouthfeel. It immediately gave off the impression of bread made with low
quality wheat.
“Where did you get this wheat from?”
“From the regular town markets, sir. It’s in
circulation everywhere. It’s also got a notoriously bad reputation among both
buyers and sellers, so I got curious...” The younger cook scratched his head
and grimaced. “Apparently, the usual wheat we use had a poor harvest this year,
so there’s less of it on the market. Thanks to this substitute wheat, we’re not
facing any shortages, but, I mean...”
He eyed his unappetizing creations and bit his
lip. Musta’s gaze, meanwhile, had shifted toward the bag of flour.
“Mia No. 2...” Musta’s brows furrowed. “I
see... So this is what Her Highness was growing in the academy city...”
News of the wheat had spread far and wide. It
was now common knowledge that Princess Mia had developed a new strain of wheat
that was resistant to cold as one of her famine countermeasures. Unfortunately,
its taste left much to be desired.
“This wheat has Her Highness’s name on it...
For it to be considered a low-quality product... No, that simply won’t do.” The
words left Musta without his conscious command. “I won’t allow it!” He found
himself incensed, almost outraged.
Knowing her, she might not
care about this at all, but... He could already
imagine her telling him that there was no need to be upset. That so long as
mouths were fed, and health and lives were preserved, then she didn’t mind her
wheat bearing an inglorious title.
But even so...
“Since this wheat is different from the kinds
we’ve used before, we can try changing the ratio. Also the bake time, the
strength of the flame, the amount of water... There are a ton of factors we can
experiment with. An unpalatable creation is the result of insufficient effort.
Blaming it on the ingredients—on the wheat—would be a disgrace to our names as
culinary craftsmen,” he declared.
He rose, his voice not loud but resonant with
conviction. Thus, the culinary craftsmen of the imperial court accepted their
challenge...only to be faced with a very, very high wall that defied their
attempts to scale it.
“Head chef, maybe it’s just impossible to make
this stuff into good bread?”
Soon, all his subordinate cooks had given up.
He himself was also on the verge of throwing in the towel. The ratio of wheat,
the bake time, the strength of the flame, the amount of water... They’d tried everything, but to no avail. At the end of a long and
arduous sequence of trial and error, no decent bread was to be found. Slowly,
disappointment turned into frustration, then resignation.
“It’s the texture. The damn texture... It just
won’t get any better...” grumbled Musta through clenched teeth.
“Whatever. I say this is good enough,” huffed
one of the cooks. “Especially considering there’s not enough regular wheat to
go around right now. I mean, sure, it’s a substitute, but at least it’s edible. And when it’s keeping everyone from starving to death,
isn’t it sort of entitled to complain about its taste?”
Musta made to dispute the sentiment, only to
find that in his heart, he agreed. He could but shake his head in a stubborn
attempt to avoid admitting his concession.
“No... Not yet... There must be some way...”
That was when he suddenly remembered the talk
he’d had with Mia about setting up a faculty of food and how the academy had
been collecting texts of culinary methods from around the world. Perhaps he
could find a hint or two in those writings.
With that thought in mind, he immediately
applied for a few days of leave and made his way toward Saint Mia Academy. Upon
arriving there, he found himself face to face with books. Many
books. The Greenmoons, with their abundant connections abroad, had put their
full efforts into the acquisition, and the result was truly jaw-dropping. There
were texts from every corner of the continent. And beyond.
A great many of the books were from overseas.
“This is...”
Despite feeling rather overwhelmed by what was
frankly more of a library than a collection, he set his mind on combing through
the contents. With every book he read, his eyes grew wider, and his wonder
followed suit.
Musta was a diligent chef. Not content to rest
on his laurels, he’d done a fair bit of culinary research on his own, skimming
books, visiting restaurants, and filching ideas from fellow chefs.
But there was still so much more.
So many techniques he’d never heard of. Even with his studiousness, he had no
way of learning about the cuisine of distant nations across the continent,
never mind on the other side of the sea.
And now, they were all here, readily
accessible to anyone who could read. The significance of that fact was not lost
on him.
“I see... So this is
where schools shine...”
As this newfound appreciation sank in, he
finally remembered to take a look at his surroundings. There were numerous
figures, all buried in books as he’d been, but all much younger than him. Upon
speaking with some of them, he learned that they’d all been drawn here by Mia’s
ideal of offering top-notch education to anyone who wished to learn, regardless
of birth or upbringing. The academy was currently home to students of all
sorts, from nobles to orphans.
“Her Highness’s ideal academy...”
He remembered his reluctance when Mia had
first proposed the idea to him, and he felt a deep shame. With it came a new
resolve. As soon as he found a solution to this wheat problem, he’d go to her
and formally promise his full cooperation.
“Um, excuse me.”
Just then, he heard a voice. Turning toward
it, he found a young boy.
“Might you be Mr. Musta Waggman, the head chef
of the imperial court?” asked the boy curiously.
His manner of speech was refined, and there
was a natural dignity to the way he carried himself. Furthermore, he knew
Musta’s name. Musta straightened, knowing he was undoubtedly in the presence of
a young noble.
“Yes, I am indeed Musta Waggman. By His
Imperial Majesty’s grace, I enjoy the honor of working in the kitchen of the
Whitemoon Palace,” he replied. “May I know your name?”
“Oh. Of course. I’m sorry. I’m Cyril Rudolvon.
Nice to meet you,” said the boy with the composure of someone twice his age.
“Ah, Rudolvon... That would make you the son
of the Outcount, yes?”
Musta was acquainted with Tiona Rudolvon
through Mia, and he could definitely see traces of her in her brother.
“I was wondering what an imperial chef like
yourself was doing here. Did you come with some instructions from Her
Highness?”
“No. Actually...”
Figuring there was no need to hide anything, Musta
briefly explained his situation. Cyril’s expression visibly clouded as he
listened.
“What’s wrong?” asked Musta, puzzled by the
boy’s reaction.
Cyril lowered his head. “Please accept my
sincerest apologies for your troubles. As a matter of fact, we were the ones
who made that wheat.”
“You made it?!”
His surprise elicited a grimace from Cyril.
“Mia No. 2 is a strain that Princess Arshia
and I developed based on the wheat we discovered in the north, and we were also
concerned about its taste...” said Cyril before looking up to meet Musta’s
gaze. “Again, I apologize for the inconvenience. But if you could give us some
time... We just need a little more time, and I promise we’ll develop a newer
strain that’s resistant to cold and tastes the same as the wheat we’re used to
from before. Until then, I ask that you bear with us.”
“A newer strain... You plan to somehow improve
that wheat strain?”
“I’ve been told that Perujin has the
technology to do so. Our timeline is...a few years. Within a few years, we hope
to have the new wheat on the market. That is our duty and mission.”
Was it pride he saw on that young face? No. It
was conviction. And confidence. The signs of someone who had been entrusted
with a piece of the Great Sage’s vision and had every intention of living up to
it. How could he not straighten before this boy? So it was that he did, with
all the respect he’d afford the princess herself, as he watched the young boy
go.
“It all makes sense now... This is why. It’s
for times like these that Her Highness wanted to have a faculty of food.”
He was struck by an epiphany. If the wheat
harvest failed, there had to be another way to feed the people. That was the
mission that Mia had given Cyril. His solution was a new strain of wheat. If
that new wheat tasted bad... That was his mission. The
academy, the faculty of food, her request... It was all part of the mission
that she’d given Musta Waggman, head chef of the imperial court.
His
cook’s comment echoed in his mind. “When there’s
almost no food to eat, isn’t it entitled to complain about its taste?”
No.
Even if it tastes bad, it’s still food. It
keeps you from starving to death. So shut your trap, eat it, and be glad that
you are.
That’s not her. She wouldn’t say that to her
people.
He felt himself shedding something stifling,
an invisible corset of sorts. The comment by his cook, the one he’d tried so
hard to fight, simply fell away.
“That’s right... She’d never cheapen food.
She’s someone who knows its true and proper value.”
Food divorced from taste was admittedly still
food. It would curb hunger. Sustain the body. But what of the mind and heart?
Memories of her birthday festival resurfaced.
He recalled the miraculous nature of that joyous celebration and the bright
smiles of people who’d eaten—in some cases, for the first time in months—a
flavorful and filling meal.
Food feeds the body. Good food nourishes the
soul. And a healthy body requires a healthy soul. By securing a substitute
strain of wheat, Mia had protected the exterior health of her people. By applying
the techniques of cuisine to that wheat, she clearly intended to strengthen
their interior.
“That was why she’d come to me; she was
trusting me with their souls.”
He’d have to live up to it then. That was all
there was to it. Day after day, she’d delighted him with liberal praise of his
cooking. It was time for him to repay the favor. Determination burned hot in
his chest. He returned to the books.
Finally, he found what he was looking for.
“What if I stopped baking it entirely? What
if...I tried steaming it?”
It was a fundamental shift in thinking. He’d
stepped all the way back and started again from square one.
Bread was an indispensable staple of Tearmoon
cuisine, and wheat was indispensable for making bread. That logic had chained
him to a line of thought from which he’d finally broken free.
“It’s not just this continent. Cuisines exist
everywhere in the world, and each has its own repertoire of techniques.
Somewhere out there, there must be a technique that’s perfect for this wheat.”
With his newfound freedom of perspective, he
retrieved from the stack of books the first one he’d read. He’d go through
every single one again, but this time, without the rigid preconception of
bread.
Musta’s relentless trial-and-error, Cyril
Rudolvon’s endeavors, and the unsung efforts of Galv and his pupils both in and
out of the academy... The fruit of this momentous undertaking was now known to
all.
Each of them, bearing the trust of Princess
Mia, had put forth their own resolve. Upon intersecting, they had formed the
titular cross of the aptly christened Project X.
What isn’t known to
all, however, was the true origin of the project’s name.
“Hmm... This new sweet the head chef thought
up is pretty good. This, uh...glutinous texture is really interesting. I can’t
get enough of it. If he keeps experimenting with culinary techniques like this,
one day... Oho ho. Infinity Cake, here I come.”
And so, the quest for the Infinity Cake
continued.









